Pink Petal Books Pink Petal Books, an imprint of Jupiter Gardens Press, publishes romance novels where ...
12 downloads
941 Views
3MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
Pink Petal Books Pink Petal Books, an imprint of Jupiter Gardens Press, publishes romance novels where the relationship is primary. It doesn’t matter if you want to read super erotic or sweet inspirational books. Pink Petal Books believes that love is a beautiful thing, no matter what form it takes. For more information about Pink Petal Books visit http://www.pinkpetalbooks.com/. The scanning, uploading and distribution of this book via the Internet or via any other means without the permission of the publisher is illegal and punishable by law. Please purchase only authorized editions and do not participate in or encourage the electronic piracy of copyrighted materials. Your support of the author’s rights is appreciated. Permission is granted to make ONE backup copy for archival purposes.
Additional Titles By The Author
A Deceitful Widow This is a work of fiction. Names, characters, places, and incidents are either the product of the author’s imagination or are used fictitiously. Any resemblance to actual events, places, organizations, or persons, living or dead, is entirely coincidental.
THE ANGEL AND ST. CLAIR ALL RIGHTS RESERVED Copyright © Diana Hussey, 2011 ISBN# 978‐0‐9839726‐9‐3 Cover Art ® 2011 by Winterheart Design Edited by Mary K. Wilson
Electronic Publication Date: November 2011 This book may not be reproduced or used in whole or in part by any means existing without written permission from the publisher, Jupiter Gardens Press, Jupiter Gardens, LLC., PO Box 191, Grimes, IA 50111 For more information to learn to more about this, or any other author’s work, please visit http://www.pinkpetalbooks.com/
The Angel and St. Clair Diana Hussey
PPB
Chapter One England, 1803 Juliette lay very still, afraid to move, afraid almost to breathe. The pain in her head swallowed her, scattered her thoughts, and she reached up to touch the side of her face. A knot swelled at her temple, and her cheekbone burned, but there did not seem to be any blood. She rubbed her fingers against the coarse blanket beneath her to warm them. A bed, she was on a bed, but not her own. Not a single blanket in her grandfather’s house was of such poor quality. She saw nothing through the smothering darkness, and she bit her lip against the sick fear seething in her stomach. Wherever this was, it was no place she wanted to be. She pushed aside the covering draped over her, rolled onto her side, and slid her feet to the edge of the bed. The effort to sit up left her panting, and she leaned against the wall until her breathing steadied. Why was she here in this strange room and how did she get hurt? There had been an accident with her coach, she remembered that much, and the horrible inn where they had stayed overnight. But it was her maid, Molly, who’d been injured. No, the men in the stable were responsible….Entremont! Yes, it was the Frenchman who had recognized her and had hit her with something. The musty smelling material heaped in her lap was a cloak, Juliette decided, fingering the garment. She wrapped it around her before she struggled to her feet and groped her way along the wall, until she felt what must be a door under her hands. She fumbled for the knob. Locked. Of course it would be. She slumped against the rough wooden planks and fought back the impulse to pound the wood with her fists. Make no noise, Juliette. Don’t let them know you are awake. It would be to her advantage if her captors believed she was still asleep, although what that advantage might be eluded her at the moment. Gradually, the reality of her situation gripped her. This was not a bad dream from which she would awaken. It was almost beyond belief, but either the Frenchman, Entremont, or his English associate had hit her and brought her to this place. True, given what she had overheard, Entremont and the others were involved in some serious wrongdoing. But why hadn’t they just done away with her then and there? Surely they knew she would go straight to the authorities once she was free. Juliette leaned her forehead against the door. Whatever their intentions, it would be wise to escape. If only she had some light! Continuing her explorations, she stopped abruptly at the feel of some kind of fabric. A curtain, it must be a curtain, and a window behind it. She pushed aside the scratchy cloth and was rewarded for her efforts with enough light from the moon to illuminate the view from the window, though there was little to see through the trees—trees growing so close to the house that branches overhung the roof jutting out sharply from the wall beneath the window. “C’est fantastique,” she breathed as the possibilities raced through her mind. She clawed at the window fastening, feeling her nails break as she fought with the rusty bolt. It broke free with a snap that sounded alarmingly loud in the dead silence. Smothering a shocked gasp, she waited what felt to be an endless amount of time before she dared to inch the heavy sash up
as far as it would open. There was a rush of chill air and she shivered, but then it was surprisingly easy. She took off the cloak, shoved it through the window onto the roof, then levered her body up on the sill and shimmied over it. She grabbed at the nearest branch, snatched up the cloak, tied it at her neck and pushed it back from her shoulders. She needed her hands free for the climb ahead. Breathing a sigh of thanks that she had been something of a hoyden growing up, Juliette began the nerve‐wracking search for a branch on which to place her feet. Her heart pounding, expecting discovery at any time, she picked her way down, pausing to rest whenever the building clouds obscured the moon. It seemed to take hours to reach the lowest limb. Lightheaded and trembling, she clutched the rough tree trunk until she felt steady again. Now what was she to do? She looked down to try to gauge the distance to the ground. There was a faint light coming from a window in the lower portion of the ramshackle house. No sign of life, however. She would have to risk it. The wind was rising and her hands were cold. Now. Now. Don’t delay. She took a deep breath, untied the cloak, and placed it across the branch. It would gain her an extra foot or two, perhaps. Another deep breath and she was over the side. She dangled momentarily at the end of the cloak, and then dropped with a thud to the ground, the cloak falling in a heap on top of her. Hardly daring to breathe, she gathered it up and crept into the underbrush, the thick layer of leaves a welcome cushion for her bruised and battered body. She lay still a minute to catch her breath and tried to calm her racing heart. She had no idea of where she was. Staring at what she could see of the house in the dim light, she wondered if there was a road or lane. Suddenly, a light shone in the second floor window and a shout rang out into the night. Panic stricken, Juliette crawled further into the brush. She was too close, too close to the house. Someone yelled, demanding a lantern. She scrambled to her feet, fought her way clear of the shrubs and began to run through the trees. There was a barely noticeable trail of sorts, and she raced along it until aching lungs forced her to a stumbling walk. It was easier going now. There was more space between the trees and she could better avoid the outstretched branches that caught at her hair and snagged the cloak streaming behind her. She did not know how far she had come; only that it wasn’t far enough. The sound of a branch snapping in the wind sent her flying heedlessly along the path, until the ground disappeared from under her feet. She fell, tumbling over and over down the side of a rock‐ strewn gully to land with a sickening abruptness that drove the breath from her body. A sharp pain bit her shoulder and she knew no more. ~* * *~ The cold roused her. Shivering violently, she struggled awake. Somehow, she knew she must not stay here. Driven now by instinct alone, she crawled to a pile of rocks and struggled to her feet. The moonlight was stronger, clearly showing the gully walls on both sides of her, too steep for her to climb. Her head ached abominably and there seemed to be something wrong with her shoulder. Forward, then. She picked her way amongst the rocks; planting one
foot in front of another with mindless determination, not even aware that the ground was rising under her feet. She felt almost numb now. Her mind and body exhausted with fear and exertion, it took some time before she realized the ground had leveled and a light glimmered though the remaining trees. Shelter, perhaps, and the thought pushed her into a shambling trot and onto a grassy verge. There, a coach, and one not in use, it seemed. She would rest for a few minutes. Juliette opened the door, scrambled into the vehicle, and with the last of her strength, pushed herself up on the seat. She wrapped the cloak around her and stretched out on the cushions. Soon, soon she would go on, and with a soft sigh, she slipped into sleep.
Chapter Two Hampshire, England, 1803 The deep voice of the tall case clock struck the hour with an unwelcome insistence. Devlin St. Clair, 9th Earl of Lynton, glared at the thing, stalked over to the fireplace, and snatched up the poker to jab at the burning logs. Another hour gone and the tide would not wait. He should have been on the road an hour ago. What was keeping Strathmere? If his uncle meant to ring a peal over his head, which he didn’t doubt for a moment, he wanted to get on with it. A dog howled in the distance and St. Clair grimaced, about ready to howl himself. The poker still in his hand, he walked to the window and peered out. The shadows cast by the trees on the moonlit grounds made it difficult to see little more than the wide swath of lawn running down to the woods, though for an instant he thought he saw a cloaked figure outlined against the edge of the trees. He leaned closer to the windowpane, but of course there was nothing there. “Next you’ll be seeing ghosts dancing around on the grass, you nod cock,” he muttered. He glanced at the clock yet again and frowned. Midnight. At this rate, the night would be wasted away and no progress made at all. It was a relief to see Strathmere come into the room, even if he did look as stern as St. Clair had ever seen him. “Lynton.” The tone was cordial, but St. Clair knew well that steely look in the Viscount’s eye and being addressed as “Lynton” did not bode well. Resisting the urge to loosen his neck cloth, St. Clair leaned the poker against the wall and returned the greeting with equal cordiality. “You wanted to see me, sir?” “Surely you expected I would? Knowing this mission is of the utmost importance to your country? Can you deny your actions have jeopardized our plans and may well result in the failure of this entire operation?” The Viscount spoke with deceptive calm, always a sign of displeasure, and St. Clair winced inwardly. “It was not my choice,” he responded, without excuse or explanation; his face set in an expression he hoped betrayed none of the disquiet he felt. “Was it not? You continue to flaunt your mistresses and play so deeply even the ton is shocked. Yes, I have heard the stories. You indulge in every wild start any fool suggests and are surprised your fiancée has the good sense to prefer another? You amaze me, nephew.” The hissing fire sounded loud in the tense silence. St. Clair stirred under his uncle’s hard stare and shrugged his wide shoulders, a thin smile on his lips. “It seems there is little left to say, sir, since you have obviously made your judgment. You have said no more than the truth, in any case, though I might remind you that Amanda was your choice of bride. Nevertheless, I would have done my duty, as I will also complete this mission. Whatever you have heard, I do not turn from my responsibilities.” His eyes met his uncle’s and now Strathmere stirred, under what St. Clair suspected was a cool gaze tinged with a bitterness he couldn’t hide.
“No one would say such a thing of you, lad,” Strathmere stated, his voice suddenly gruff. “It was not my intent to impugn your character thusly. If I’ve misjudged the matter between you and Amanda I ask your pardon. However…” he paused, and returned St. Clair’s hard look with one just as cold. “There is no gainsaying the importance of this undertaking and it will be next to impossible to recruit anyone else at this late date. I can hold you responsible for that failure, St. Clair, and so I shall.” Noting he was no longer “Lynton”, St. Clair knew the worst was over and some of the tension seeped from his shoulders. Perhaps he was too quick to judge as well and unduly defensive. “I have no intention of failing to accomplish your mission, sir. The coach is prepared, as you directed, and the ship lies ready.” “If you think to carry it through on your own, I must forbid it,” the Viscount replied, his expression grim. “Naught but harm can come of it. My sources are very clear on that point. It must be a woman who meets with la Comtesse in Amiens.” St. Clair lifted a brow and bowed. “Why, so it shall be, sir.” He started toward the door. “I must go if I mean to make the tide. Good eve to you, uncle.” Strathmere lifted a hand in protest. “Go? Where do you mean to go?” The Earl turned back for a moment and grinned at the look of consternation on his uncle’s face. “Why, I go to find a wife, of course.” He slipped out the door, ignoring the spluttering behind him, and paused in the entrance hall to put on his hat and gloves and toss a thick cloak around his shoulders. The servants long abed as instructed, St. Clair let himself out through the heavy doors and ran down the steps to the waiting coach. The night air felt sharp against his face and he stared up at the sky. Clear, for a change, the stars bright overhead and the moon full. It would be a good night to travel. He gave the somewhat shabby coach a careful inspection before he climbed up on the box to sit beside his coachman and the young groom who would accompany them as far as Portsmouth. “Not quite what you’re used to, is it, Ned?” “No, my lord, but then there’s more to this rig than meets the eye, you could say,” the older of the two men answered placidly. St. Clair’s crack of laughter echoed through the night. “You might say that indeed. The men did a good job on it.” They drove in companionable silence after that. St. Clair mulled over his hasty words of bravado. Where the devil he was to find a temporary wife he didn’t yet know. He would though, demned if he wouldn’t. He felt sure not one of his friends would doubt it for as much as a minute. Devlin St. Clair could be counted on to pull off almost anything, they’d declare loudly—and back up their words with a wager besides. Blessed, or cursed, as the high‐sticklers said, with a lively sense of the ridiculous and a natural talent for invention, he and his friends tumbled in and out of scrapes that provided the ton with no end of delightful gossip. He may be sporting mad, as accused, which seemed to him to be better than falling into a drunken stupor every night, and might keep a mistress, or two, but it was harmless enough. He grinned into the dark. Perhaps he was the ‘fribble’ they deemed him, but nevertheless, he took his responsibilities seriously. Something the unlamented fair Amanda never understood, for all their long acquaintance.
With a mental shrug, St. Clair wished her joy of her staid, prosy duke. He could even forgive her for unwittingly jeopardizing his mission to France, since it meant he wouldn’t be leg‐shackled to a flighty, volatile female. A more dependable lady awaited him now—the Lady Gay should be ready to sail. St. Clair emerged from his reflections long enough to take note of the village through which they were passing. They were not much more then a few hours from Portsmouth, he judged. He would have enough time to visit a certain house he knew, hard by the harbor, where anything could be found for a price, including a wife. A gesture to Ned brought the coach to a standstill long enough for him to move his chilled body inside for a respite from the wind. He stretched out as much as the cramped space would allow and groped in the dark for a blanket. His hand closed on a length of scratchy material and he gave a sharp tug. “Mmm.” Shocked into immobility by the low moan, St. Clair sat frozen, arm still outstretched, waiting with indrawn breath for the eerie sound to occur again. “Mmm.” Gad, there it was again. His pent‐up breath came out in a long hiss of surprise as his hands touched the unmistakable outline of a human form. Hellfire. Someone was in here with him. No ghostly spectre, either. Cautiously he explored the body under his hands and cursed the inky blackness. He fumbled in his pocket for his flint, finally striking a wavering light on the third attempt. His mind registered a cloud of dark hair and a flash of white skin before burning fingers forced him to extinguish the flame and plunged him back into darkness. Bloody hell, a woman. He banged hard on the coach roof and the vehicle rolled to a halt. “My lord?” St. Clair jumped to the ground and unhooked a lantern from the side. “Give the reins to Dan and come down here, Ned,” he ordered. “You won’t believe this, but we have a stowaway. … I’m not sure I believe it,” he muttered under his breath as he climbed back into the coach. Ned crowded in beside him, taking the lantern while St. Clair turned back the cloak partially covering the woman’s face. “Hell’s bells,” he breathed. “Would you look at that?” Stunned, the two men stared at the stranger in the uncertain light. “Looks to be hurt, she is, my lord,” Ned said after a long silence. “There’s blood on her. You see?” “I see.” St. Clair said curtly, strangely moved at the sight of the pale, defenseless face. He folded back the cloak to further expose the red stain on her gown. He’d been right about the cloud of hair, he could now see, and he smoothed back the tangled mass of black curls to touch the pulse at her throat. Slow, frighteningly slow, and her skin icy under his hand. “She ain’t dead, is she, sir?” Ned questioned in a worried voice. “No, she isn’t dead. Not yet. But she will be if she stays out in this cold much longer.” He frowned in concentration. “There is a small inn just a short distance off the main road, not far from here. Get the horses moving, Ned. We will stop there for help.”
St. Clair cradled the still form in his arms and tucked the blanket around her, surprised by the sense of protectiveness evoked by the feel of this helpless female resting against him. He found himself almost unable to move as he waited for each slow breath. Who was she? How the devil did she come to be in his coach? He doubted her presence was connected to his mission, known only to a handful of people, but the coach had arrived just a few hours ago and he found it difficult to believe chance had brought her here. His lips tight with worry, St. Clair stepped from the coach the instant they rolled to a stop before the door of a tiny, dimly lit inn. His foot tapped with impatience as he waited for Ned to pass the reins to Dan and jump down from his perch to bang on the door. “Now, now. What’s all this ado?” The innkeeper, clad in a nightshirt and cap that would have greatly diverted the Earl in easier circumstances, held out a candle to peer at the strange party on his doorstep. “There’s been an accident. The lady needs attention immediately.” St. Clair shouldered the gaping man aside. “I want a room and a surgeon.” He glared at his hapless host. “Don’t just stand there, you dolt. You must have a bed somewhere we can use. Yours, if need be.” Speechless with amazement, the innkeeper’s mouth opened and closed repeatedly, giving him a strong resemblance to a landed fish. St. Clair ignored the dumbstruck man and stepped toward the staircase, just as another voice called down. “Mercy, Mr. May. What is it?” Now it was St. Clair’s turn to stare, for descending the stairs was an enormously fat woman of indeterminate age, dressed in the most voluminous and brilliantly purple dressing gown he’d ever had the misfortune to see. Emboldened by the appearance of his wife, the landlord found his tongue. “It’s gentry, Mrs. May. That’s wot. Wanting a room.” At another time, the Earl’s ready humor would have found this scene a source of amusement, but not tonight. “Of course I want a room,” he growled between clenched teeth. But it appeared the missus was blessed with rather more wit than her husband. Moving her bulk with surprising speed, she sized up the situation in a moment. “Land’s sake, Mr. May, don’t act the fool and keep them standing about. Get off to the kitchen and heat up some water. You, sir, come with me. We’ll have the poor mite tucked up in no time. There’s room for your horses in the stable, I expect, and ale in the taproom for your men, if you be wishful of it.” Relieved at this evidence of competency, St. Clair nodded a dismissal to Ned and followed her upstairs into a bedchamber. He eased the now softly moaning woman onto the bed and stepped back to watch as Mrs. May bent over and began to remove the lady’s cloak and shoes. “Ah, the poor thing. ‘Tis a nasty knock on the head your lady’s got there, sir, and worse on that shoulder, I daresay. But not so bad it can’t be mended, don’t think that, for I’ve seen far greater ills in my time. We’ll soon have the dear right as rain. Though why rain is right, I’ve never understood.” Her gentle fingers drew open the red splattered gown to expose a gash across one white shoulder. Blood still oozed from the wound and St. Clair winced. “The surgeon, ma’am?”
“It’s not as bad as it looks, sir. I can tend to her, if you’ll allow, for the only medical man within ten miles you wouldn’t be wanting, and that’s a fact. I can stitch it myself, with Mr. May’s help, for he’s not as lackwit as he appears, and put some good homemade salve on that bruise. Though a good sleep in a warm bed will do her more good than anything else.” The innkeeper’s voice held no doubt of her abilities, and reassured by the kind look in the woman’s dark eyes, St. Clair nodded his agreement. He believed he could do much worse, after seeing her competent handling of this mysterious stranger. His gaze shifted to the woman lying on the bed. Girl, he amended, for the creamy white skin was fresh and unlined and her hair tumbled riotously around her face like that of a child’s. A single tear rolled from under one thickly curling eyelash, and he felt such an ache in his throat at the sight his acquiescence was curt. “Do what is necessary.” Mrs. May’s plump face creased into a smile. “Indeed I shall, sir. Here’s Mr. May with the water now,” she declared, glancing toward the door. “Your lady wife will be back with us in no time, never fear.” She began removing the remainder of her patient’s clothes, turning her back on the two men. Taking this as a signal to leave the room, St. Clair followed the landlord down to the taproom. His lady wife, b’gad. They believed the waif was his wife. A natural supposition, he supposed, struggling to swallow the idea. Sending the flustered May back upstairs to help and not seeing another victim on which to vent his anger at this unexpected complication, St. Clair stalked across the taproom, poured out a tankard of ale, and stretched his legs along a settle in front of the banked fire. He took a long pull at the dark brew. Damn, he’d needed that this last hour. His lady. That was a fine turn of affairs. He needed someone to pretend to be his wife, but not someone likely to scream bloody murder when she laid eyes on him. The Lord only knew what would come out of that pretty mouth, either. She could be the veriest fishwife for all he knew, though his educated eye had noticed the well‐cut, fashionable dress. “Stolen, no doubt,” he groused. No gently bred female would turn up unconscious in a stranger’s coach. He was aware of a crushing disappointment as he acknowledged the likelihood the appealing chit would turn out to be some ruffian’s ladybird. St. Clair set down the tankard with an angry thump. Damn him for being such a sentimental fool. He jumped to his feet, however, when he heard the landlady call down to tell him her patient was awake.
Chapter Three She watched the huge woman who had declared herself Mrs. May bustle around the room, stir the fire and gather the soiled clothing. Exactly what the woman was talking about was a mystery, but the woman’s good will was apparent, and she tried to make sense of her words. “Proper worried, he’s been, milady. It does a body good to see a husband so caring like. ‘Tis lucky you are.” Gentle fingers tucked the blanket around her. “No, don’t try to talk. You’ve had a bad time of it. Rest now.” Obediently, she closed her eyes until she heard the woman depart and the door close. Ignoring the blinding pain, she turned her head and searched desperately for something familiar. Where was she? What was this place? She struggled to sit up, trying to remember how she came to be here. “Non, non, je ne me souviens pas.” St. Clair came through the door and crossed the room in two long strides, caught her hands in his, and pressed her down onto the bed. What the devil? What didn’t she remember? “Easy now, child,” he soothed. “You’ll do yourself harm tossing around.” “Je ne sais pas vous. Qui êtes‐vous?” she sobbed, her body shaking. St. Clair stared at her, his mind racing at this unexpected development. She was French? The devil she was. “N’ont aucune peur.” He brushed back her hair with a steady, quieting touch. “Have no fear.” He repeated the calming words until he felt her relax. “Better now?” he asked with a smile. “Yes,” she whispered. The change to English was startling, but he made no comment and followed her lead. “You are in pain?” He touched her bandaged shoulder. “Will you take some laudanum? There is a draught prepared.” “No. Please, the pain is bearable. I do not wish to sleep just now.” Her voice was tight with strain, the effort to master panic an obvious struggle, and St. Clair silently applauded her spirit. “I’m sorry. I’m not usually such a watering pot. At least, I don’t think I am,” she said, a doubtful look in her eyes. “Who are you, please? I have no memory of you, or this place....I don’t even remember who I am!” The wide blue eyes were suspiciously wet, and he sensed a discreet withdrawal was in order. The Earl rose, stirred the fire, and fetched a chair from across the room to place beside the bed. “I am St. Clair. Devlin St. Clair, Lord Lynton,” he said in a low, soothing voice, aware that she watched his every move with the intensity of a snake charmer. He lounged back in the chair, content to let her study him as long as she wished. He was at a loss for words in any case. If she had lost her memory, and he could scarcely question it or she was a superb actress, what was he to do with her? The hour of departure was fast approaching, the tide would not wait, and he had still to find a woman to playact as his wife. Tamping down his impatience, he
kept his expression calm and easy as he returned her gaze, hiding his amusement at the long scrutiny. “You look like an angel I once saw in a painting years ago, when I was little more than a boy. I remember staring at that angel for hours while sitting through many an overlong service. She was dressed in just such a garment as that.” He flicked a finger to indicate the tent‐like raiment enveloping her slim figure. “Oh.” Startled, the girl glanced down and pulled up the blanket. But his ploy was effective. Imperceptibly she relaxed, and some of the confusion faded from her eyes. “I thought angels had blonde hair, and wings, which I am sure I do not,” she replied in a steadier voice. “Not this angel,” he said with a grin. “No doubt the artist chose to flatter his patron by using the lady of the house as his model, dark‐haired as she was, which might be why I found her so interesting. But you are lacking the halo.” Her brows drew together in a frown and she winced at the sudden movement. “Why do I know that, about angels, I mean, and don’t know who I am? You say you are St. Clair and that means nothing to me. Should I know you, my lord?” St. Clair hesitated, uncertain of how much he should tell her. She looked damned fragile lying there, pain etching her fine features into sharp relief against the cloud of dark hair. She could bear little more, he decided. “No, you have no reason to know of me. We are chance met and I know nothing more of you than you do me. Sleep now. Time enough for explanations when you are feeling stronger.” He touched the back of one hand in response to the apprehensive expression on her face. “I won’t desert you, you have my word. We will see this resolved.” She made no reply but he was pleased to see her tension ease and the long‐lashed eyelids flutter closed. Quietly, he returned the chair to its place and left the room to look for Ned. He found him in the taproom, nodding over a tankard of ale. “My lord.” Ned straightened and rose to draw a brew for his master. “How does the lady?” St. Clair took a welcome swallow of the strong ale and leaned wearily against the bar. “Well enough, I suppose,” he allowed with a short laugh. “Our esteemed landlady believes her to be my wife. A notion I prefer to let stand for the time being. It won’t help the situation to have her thought a light skirt, which she is not, or I’ll eat my hat. Dammit, Ned, the woman has no memory of who she is or how she came to be in the coach,” St. Clair complained, “and what we are to do with her I can’t tell you.” Aware of Ned’s thoughtful and expectant gaze, the Earl made a conscious effort to appear unworried. His coachman knew him well and trusted him to lead them out of this entanglement as he always had in the past. Ned claimed his master had an inventive mind but whether he would come about this time, who knew? St. Clair stood for some time, thinking through various plans, and then downed the remainder of his ale, set aside the tankard, and reached into his pocket. “Here, Ned. You’ll have need of some ready. This is what I want you to do.” His mind now set on a course of action, St. Clair issued orders in a decisive voice. He tossed a purse of coins to the surprised coachman. “I want you and Dan to take the coach to Portsmouth and get it
aboard the ship as planned.” He looked toward the window, gray now with the approaching dawn. “You should just about make it at full light. Tell Captain Carlisle plans have changed and we won’t sail until tonight’s tide. Then hire a chaise and get back here as fast as you can.” He paused, and then took out a few more coins to add to Ned’s already sizable amount. “Get some women’s clothes, and something to put them in.” He grinned at the look of dismay on Ned’s face. “Don’t worry, Ned. You’re a married man. You’ll manage.” Ned rose and swallowed any protest. “And you, my lord?” St. Clair’s eyebrows shot up in mocking surprise. “Me? Why, I shall keep watch over my sweet bride, of course,” he drawled. He laid a hand on Ned’s shoulder and gave him a gentle shake. “Get going, man. It depends on you now.” Ned went, his head shaking in bemusement as he left the room, and St. Clair grinned. It appeared his coachman expected trouble ahead, and it did seem at times to follow him about, as Ned often claimed. St. Clair took another sip of his ale while he thought about how to turn this unexpected development to his advantage. He was not at all sure of the best course to follow, with more affairs than his own in jeopardy, but it went against his every instinct to abandon the helpless girl upstairs. She was little more than that, he wagered, and caught up in something not of her making. If he was not able to persuade her to his way of thinking, he would take her to Portsmouth and find some respectable woman to stay with her until he returned. But she would be much better off going to France with him. They could search for her relatives— surely someone was looking for her—after they returned and the mission accomplished successfully. Having settled this in his mind, he dismissed the likelihood of problems resulting from this decision. His natural optimism restored, he ran up the steps to the patient’s room and made himself as comfortable as possible in the sturdy wooden chair. He’d slept in worse places. He rested his head against the wall behind him and promptly fell asleep. ~* * *~ She drifted into consciousness hours later, to the steady sound of quiet breathing, and curious, opened her eyes. The sky outside the window was light now. Her head didn’t ache quite as much and the throbbing was almost gone. Still, she was cautious when she turned to seek the source of the sound. She studied the man slouched on a chair, in what looked an uncommonly uncomfortable position. Mon Dieu. He must be very tired to sleep so. She searched her mind for a name. St. Clair. Devlin St. Clair. At least she remembered that. A thick wave of fair hair had fallen across his forehead as he slept and she smiled a little. With the strong lines of his face relaxed and the strange, almost yellow eyes hidden, he looked much younger. Not so formidable at all. For a long time, she continued to watch him, reassured by his presence, although why he had this effect on her she did not know. She knew nothing of him at all. Who was she? The question repeated over and over in her mind, though not so urgently now. It was passing strange, this absence of memory. She knew, for instance, the names of the various items around her, that the sleeping man wore a finely woven suit of broadcloth, somewhat disheveled now, that was cut so beautifully it shouted of London. How could she
remember that Weston or Stulz were most likely the source of such clothing, but could not remember her name? It was frightening, and she concentrated on what she did know to ward off another wave of panic. That she thought as easily in French as in English was a curious thing, but comforting, nevertheless. Surely if her mind held so much insignificant information, she would remember all else with time. She turned on her side with care and winced at the soreness in her shoulder. Other than that, everything appeared to be in working order, although she felt bruised in more than one place. Encouraged, she pushed herself up against the pillows until she was almost sitting up. Pleased she was no longer dizzy, she tugged at the strange garment she wore and giggled. “J’ai sur une tente,” she whispered, picturing the enormous woman who had been so kind. The quiet words were enough to wake St. Clair. “Good morning, angel. It does indeed resemble a tent.” “Oh, you are awake.” “Indeed, it appears we are both awake,” he said with an amused look that made her cheeks hot. “You are looking much more the thing today, which can’t be said of me, I’m afraid. Gad, my valet would be horrified if he saw me thus.” He rose, stretched his stiffened muscles and made an attempt to straighten his rumpled clothing. “You are still in better case than I, my lord,” she said with a wry smile. “I don’t know, angel. There is a certain cachet to your attire. Trés originale,” he teased, grinning at her. “Perhaps so, my lord, but I would prefer it otherwise. Have I no clothes?” She took a deep breath and her smile faded as she met his gaze. “Will you tell me now, my lord, what you know of me and how I came to be here? It is most disagreeable, you understand, not to know who one is.” “Indeed, I’m sure it is very disagreeable.” St. Clair walked over to the bed and looked down at her with a quizzical look. “Never having lost my memory, although there have been times when it would be most kind, I don’t know how I’d feel about it. Far less accepting than you, I suspect.” He took one of her hands in his and sat on the end of the bed. “Clothes are the easy part. You have none but what you wore last night, and I doubt that gown will be wearable again. I have sent to remedy that. As to your other questions, I have little enough to tell you.” He began with his discovery of her unconscious in his coach, relating the whole to her in a calm, measured voice. “I see,” she said after a long pause when his tale ended. “It is less than I hoped. Was there nothing about my person to indicate whence I came?” She moved her hand away to brush impatiently at her eyes. “Nothing.” She flinched at his dispassionate reply, but drew herself up and met his gaze squarely. “You have been extraordinarily kind in your attentions, my lord. Any words of gratitude must be woefully inadequate. But for your concern, it seems I might well have died. You must not allow me to delay your business further, sir. I shall contrive,” she told him in a steady voice.
“Very nicely said, my dear.” St. Clair rose and again took her hand in his. “Did you think I would just go off and leave you here? A pretty idea you must have of me.” Laughing, he shook his head. “No, don’t turn away,” he ordered when she tried to free herself from his firm grip. “You’ll not be shut of me so easily. I have no intention of deserting you, angel. How else could I ever learn the answers to this puzzle?” He smiled down at her and she did not resist when he pushed her gently back down on the bed. “Rest while I find us some food. Then I have a proposal to make that might temporarily resolve your current situation.” He left the room before she could think of a response. In any case, she had little inclination to protest his orders. He was not to desert her. It was all she needed to know right now.
Chapter Four Within the hour, St. Clair stepped into the bedchamber. He was not surprised to see his mysterious stranger asleep. Nor was he entirely displeased by this evidence of her weakened state, for it might make her more malleable, and by God, he needed her so. He resumed his place in the all too familiar chair and had just reached out to wake her when a knock on the door announced a beaming Mrs. May with the food he had requested. “I’ll just put the tray on the table, if you please, my lord.” Mrs. May looked questioningly at him before glancing at her patient. “She does look a mite better, don’t you think, sir? More colour in her cheeks, the poor lamb. She needed the rest, but some nourishment would do her good. It might be wise to wake her now, if you still plan to leave today.” “I do, ma’am, very soon. Thank you. You have done very well by us,” he added, his smile bringing a flush to her cheeks. “‘Tis glad I am to help, my lord. I will be near to hand if you need anything else.” She hurried from the room and he turned and gently shook the sleeping girl. “Wake up, angel, your breakfast is here. Luncheon, as well, I suppose.” He took out his pocket watch to check the time. Damnation, it was after eleven. Ned and Dan should return momentarily and he still had a deal of ground to cover. He was relieved to see the finely veined lids blink open, revealing eyes no longer clouded with confusion. “Monsieur, vous avez returnee.” “Yes, I have returned and it is time for you to eat.” He slipped his arm under her shoulders and propped some pillows behind her before he moved the table closer and poured out some now lukewarm tea. That seemed of little importance however, for she drained the cup in thirsty gulps. “My throat was so dry,” she apologized. “I am hungry as well.” Her startled expression at that realization made him chuckle. “I’m not surprised,” St. Clair replied, passing her some toast. “You look as if a strong wind would blow you away. Eat up.” He sipped at his own tea while he watched her eat most of the toast and nibble on a slice of ham before she leaned back with a sigh. “That was very nice, thank you. May I have more tea?” He drained the pot into her cup and then placed the tray outside the door while she sipped at the cool, dark liquid. “Feeling better?” He took the empty cup and set it on the table. “Yes, much better. I would like to get up now, s'il vous plaît.” Colour tinged her cheeks and she lowered her eyes to avoid his gaze. “Would you send the chambermaid to me?” A maid, is it? Where the devil did she think she was? Then the reason for her embarrassment dawned on him and he bit back a smile. “This inn does not run to maids, I’m afraid, but Mrs. May has been seeing to your needs. Wait here while I get her.” St. Clair heard the sharp intake of breath as he went to the door and wondered if she would wait. Not likely, he decided. Not with that determined little chin. True to her word, the landlady was at hand and quick to respond to his request for aid. Curious, he lingered just outside the door.
“Now then, ma’am, let me help you, though you seem steady enough on your feet. You have need of the commode, I expect, and ‘tis there, right behind that screen.” There was the sound of Mrs. May’s heavy tread, and the fainter, hesitant steps of the girl. He grinned, pleased to have his judgment confirmed. He was beginning to think she might do very well. St. Clair turned and ran down the stairs to see the landlord about settling the bill. They’d been damn lucky to find such accommodating hosts. It was worth every penny and then some. The door was still ajar when he returned and he stood outside for a few minutes. He had more sense than to start what was bound to be a difficult conversation by barging in and embarrassing the woman. “There now, ma’am, a bit of a wash always makes a body feel better, doesn’t it?” Mrs. May said in a bracing voice. “If you can manage a few more minutes on your feet, we can put on your gown. I’ve done what I could to mend it and it will do well enough, I’m thinking.” A rustling and a quickly bitten off cry of pain made him frown and he checked the impulse to rush into the room. Of course getting a dress over that wound was going to be painful. But he eased the door open nevertheless and looked in. The two women stood beside the bed, Mrs. May apparently attempting to do up the back of the girl’s dress. “I’ve just done a few buttons at the neck, milady, so it won’t be tight against the bandage. ‘Tis a good thing I added a mite of fabric whilst mending it, else we’d not have gotten it on at all.” “You have been very kind,” came the somewhat breathless reply. “Thank you.” Mrs. May clucked her approval. “It will do.” “I believe it will, Mrs. May,” the Earl agreed as he strolled into the room. Hands stuffed casually into his pockets, he surveyed the girl from head to toe, his gaze bringing a flush to her cheeks. Not a beauty, but a pretty little thing, he decided; especially now that there was some colour in her face. “Much better, although that dress will never be the same again, I daresay.” “Indeed not, my lord.” Mrs. May gathered up the pitcher and washbowl. “‘Tis glad your lady will be to have her own things about her again. Poor dear, and her so sweet and pretty, just like her name.” Puzzled, his brows drew together. “What about her name?” To his surprise, two spots of colour appeared on the landlady’s plump cheeks. “I can hear well enough, sir,” she said in a voice stiff with dignity, “and Angel ‘tis uncommon enough to catch the ear, you might say.” She sallied out, missing the Earl’s wide grin. “Angel, humm. Well, why not? It’s as good as anything, I suppose, and better than some I can think of. Do you mind?” She shook her head, and closed her eyes, but not before he caught the quick look of dismay. Of course the reminder that she had no name would affect her, you fool. He eyed her bent head. “We can choose another,” he offered. There was a long silence and he was about to suggest something when she looked up at him.
“I do not mind, my lord,” she replied, a hint of amusement in her voice. “I much prefer it to Ophelia, for instance." He laughed, pleased at her little attempt at humor. “I should hope so. You are not mad either, which makes it all the more an unlikely choice.” “Am I not, my lord?” “Don’t be an ninny,” he said, his voice rough with annoyance. “You have had a bump on the head and lost your memory for a time, nothing else. Now be a good girl and sit down.” She appeared doubtful, but seemed to find something reassuring in his face for she perched on the side of the bed, leaving the chair to him. “What am I to do?” The calm question was so at odds with the hands clasped tightly in her lap that St. Clair had to consciously check the urge to gather her in his arms and soothe away the fear he saw on her face. It would do no good to undermine the effort she was making to conquer those fears, or undermine his determination not to yield to temptation, for that matter. He had enough on his conscience already without adding the seduction of an innocent to it. “The first thing you must learn is to call me St. Clair, remember? Or if you prefer it, Devlin.” Her eyes widened at this, and the repeated “St. Clair” was almost inaudible, but she did as he bid. “Good. It would be thought very odd if my wife were to address me otherwise, you know.” “Your wife? But I am not!” she protested, blinking in surprise. “No, of course not. But our hosts believe it to be so and I wish to continue thus. You couldn’t travel with me otherwise.” “I see. That is why Mrs. May addresses me as “my lady”? You told her we were married?” “I told her nothing,” he snapped, irritated at the look of dismay on her face. “Our hosts assumed that to be the case and I saw no reason to complicate things further by telling them the truth.” He gave her a mocking smile and raised an eyebrow. “Are you certain you want it known you have no idea who you are or that you were alone on the road?” Angel took a deep breath, comprehension dawning in her eyes. “No, I do not want it known.” She bit her lip and gave him a pleading look. “I don’t want anyone to know. But what am I to do? Why am I to go with you, my…St. Clair?” “I can’t very well abandon you to fend for yourself. You are as defenseless as a newborn babe.” He ran his fingers through his thick hair and jumped up to pace around the room. “Hell’s bells, what a mess,” he muttered, half to himself. “The most important undertaking in my life and I have made a shocking mull of the whole thing.” “Is your language always so colourful, m’…St. Clair?” She was eyeing his restless pacing with a wary expression, and he stopped in his tracks to glare at her before he burst into laughter. “Yes it is, my girl, and I have no intention of moderating my language for you, so don’t expect it. You have but to do as you are told and we will scrape along fine.” His ill humour dissipating as suddenly as it had come, St. Clair sat on the edge of the bed and studied her face.
“You are weary, I see, and I have said little to the point.” He leaned forward and covered her hands with his. Hellfire, why was it so difficult to say? It couldn’t be his reservations about involving this understandably confused girl in his possibly dangerous affairs, now could it? His conscience jeered and he gave himself a mental shake. It was for her good as well as his, after all. Annoyed by the look of weary patience on her face, his voice was harsher than intended. “I want you to pretend to be my wife for the next fortnight.” She stared at him in amazement. “Pretend to be your wife? C’est impossible! What of your family, your friends? No one would believe such a thing.” “My family doesn’t enter into it. We shall be in France the entire time in any case.” “France?” she repeated in a faint voice, what colour she had draining from her face. “I could not possibly go to France.” His eyes narrowed. “Nonsense, you speak French so fluently you could very well be French. This is no more than a simple jaunt through the countryside, nothing to cause alarm. What is it you fear?” Her head drooped under his steady gaze. “I do not know,” she whispered. “I only know the thought of France makes me feel frightened. Why must you go there?” “I have something of importance to deliver in that country,” he replied, rising as he spoke. “That is all that need concern you. You will come to no harm, I promise you, and when we return I will make every effort to restore you to your family. Will you help me?” She lifted her head to stare at him. “But I don’t know you. And I don’t want to go to France,” she repeated in a plaintive voice. She pressed her fingers against one cheek and frowned. “What if someone comes looking for me?” “I will leave word with our hosts to send a message to a friend in London. He will know of our whereabouts.” He touched her cheek lightly, and then grasped her hand in his. “You will need to trust me, Angel.” Her pain‐shadowed eyes examined him for a long moment. St. Clair wanted to pull her close, lay her obviously aching head in his arms, and coax her to his way of thinking. But he sat very still, trying to keep all expression from his face, and waited. This had to be her decision. It was bad enough he even considered taking this unknown girl away with him. He would not force her. The silence had stretched out an uncomfortably long time when she suddenly spoke. “I cannot explain it, sir, for I find you a perplexing gentleman, but somehow I do trust you and I will go with you to France as you wish.” She leaned back against the pillows as if exhausted, and he relinquished her hand to pull up the blanket and tuck it around her. “You won’t regret it, you have my word.” He smiled and brushed the hair back from her face. “Sleep a bit. We will be leaving shortly.” She blinked, her eyes wide with some expression he could not decipher, and then turned her face into the pillow. “As you wish,” she murmured. St. Clair stood for a minute and watched as she slid into sleep. He’d give a pony to know the thoughts in that pretty head. Well, there would be time ahead to find out. He grinned,
surprised at how relieved he was to have her agreement. The next few weeks promised to be quite interesting.
Chapter Five It was late afternoon when the sweating horses came to a halt on the docks. Held securely in St. Clair’s arms, Angel had slept throughout the journey. He stepped down onto the deserted wharf, gave Ned some low‐voiced instructions, and carried his burden up the gangplank, navigating the narrow boardwalk with care. “St. Clair! Where the devil have you been? I couldn’t get an explanation worth tuppence from Ned." A dark visaged, muscular man appeared at the top of the gangway. “Don’t you know we’re behind times, man?” The Earl grinned, without the slightest twinge of repentance. “A fine greeting, Carlisle. It’s a wonder I am here at all and already you are raking me down. Gad, you sound like Uncle Vincent. Quiet now, you will wake the lady.” Captain Carlisle’s mouth closed with a snap. Without another word, he led the Earl along a dim passageway and with a look that spoke volumes, opened the door of a small cabin. “In here,” he said in a low voice. St. Clair could sense the Captain’s gaze boring into his back as he placed Angel on the built‐in bunk, removed her shoes, and tucked a blanket around her. “Light a lamp, will you, Carlisle?” St. Clair asked. “I don’t want her to be frightened when she wakes.” Carlisle’s brows rose at this but he did as requested, paused long enough to give the sleeping form a speculative look, and followed St. Clair from the cabin. “All right, Dev, let’s have it,” he demanded. “I want an explanation, by God, and it had better be damn good.” St. Clair halted and looked back over his shoulder. “You will have it, Jasp, but not until I have had a wash‐up and something decent to eat…and don’t forget the wine.” He turned into the next cabin, grinning at the tight‐lipped expression of annoyance on Carlisle’s face. He had no doubt the Captain would like nothing better than to give him a good thrashing, but they’d been friends for a long time and Jasper was well acquainted with St. Clair’s mad adventures. He would soon put it aside. Indeed, a few minutes later he heard the clatter of boots as the Captain went above, followed by a stream of clear, precise, instructions to the crew to cast off. Deep voices sang out the chain of commands and the rasp of the lines as they curled onto the deck drifted into the cabins below. St. Clair felt the ship slide away from the dock with a sense of fatalism. The die was cast now; for better or worse. He had made a sketchy wash and changed his clothes before Carlisle reappeared, strolling into the cabin as if it were a dance floor and St. Clair suppressed a twinge of envy at this reminder of his friend’s superb balance. “Stop looking so superior and come share a bottle," he complained, and giving up the struggle to adjust to the steady roll, slid into the comparative safety of a chair. “I’m fit company once again, and you shall have the whole of it.” ~* * *~ Angel woke with a gasp, her mind clouded with faceless people she could not remember. “Maman? Marie?” she murmured as she gradually became aware of her surroundings. She was on the boat to England. Maman was gone, and Papa, too. For a few moments she strained to
expand the elusive memory. The effort served only to make her head ache fiercely, but she felt certain her recollection was correct. Once before she had crossed the sea in such a vessel, with someone named Marie. She pushed herself up enough to lean against the back of the bunk and studied her suroundings. A shuttered lantern sat on a railed shelf beside the cabin door, its faint light a golden glow in the small room. All of the shelves had railings, she noticed, which was sensible on a ship. Someone had hung a bright red‐checked curtain across the porthole and draped the tiny table with the same material, a surprisingly homey touch and she wondered about the rightful occupant of this cabin. Where was he to sleep? Where was St. Clair, for that matter? Careful not to bump against the bunk above, Angel eased from the berth and clung to the post until she adapted somewhat to the movement of the ship. Her head swam, but it soon passed and the rumble of voices coming through the wall brought her fully awake. “Just what are you about, Dev?” a deep male voice said. “Dammit. That ain’t Amanda Maybury.” “Of course it isn’t Amanda, Jasp. That’s my Angel, and she’s a damn sight better than ‘Manda, let me tell you.” The Earl. It was the Earl speaking. Angel crept over to the wall and sank cross‐legged to the floor. She was not above eavesdropping to add to her meager knowledge. She had nothing but intuition to guide her in judgment of the man. She sensed he had told her the truth, but what if she was mistaken? She needed to know. For a second she had to close her eyes against the frightening feeling of emptiness. Mais non. This was a defeatism she could not accept. She would regain her memory. Already a tiny piece had returned. In the meanwhile, she would listen—and learn. The other man—who sounded as if he might be a close friend—spoke in a tone of long‐ suffering patience. “Dev, you are supposed to be bringing your bride on her wedding trip. Where is Amanda?” “She ran off with Huntly. Told me I would make a dreadful husband and she really couldn’t make the sacrifice—even for me.” Angel could hear the wicked amusement in St. Clair’s voice. “Amanda eloped with a duke? Why, you have been promised practically from the cradle.” The man sounded as stunned as Angel felt. She pressed closer to the wall, anxious to hear his answer. “I daresay that was the problem. ‘Manda knows me too well. It’s hard to imagine someone you knew in short pants as a husband.” “You don’t look too cut–up about it.” “I am not in the least cut–up about it. You must have windmills in your head to even suggest it.” St. Clair’s voice was light with amusement. “I was happy to receive my congé, I assure you. Amanda will lead Huntly a pretty dance, mind you, but he’ll make her happy. Too bad he has that silly name. Can’t imagine what his parents were about. Henley Huntly. They call him Hen, you know.” At his low chuckle the captain groaned. “We are about to abort an assignment that required months of planning and you prattle of names?”
“Hellfire, Jasper. I would have tied the knot if Amanda hadn’t shabbed off. You know me better than that. My mother and sister were damned unhappy about it; Uncle Vincent was downright scalding.” “I can just imagine Strathmere’s comments, having been on the receiving end of one of his masterly set‐downs more than once. One of those icy glares and I’m reduced to the veriest of schoolboys. Not that we did not deserve it, hell‐bent on mischief as we were.” Angel smiled a little at the shared laughter that followed this sally. They were very good friends, it seemed. “We did test his patience more often than not, and this business with Amanda sent him over the top, but it never entered my mind not to finish the assignment, Jasper. I was going to hire a wife.” “Why do I feel as if I’m lost in the maze at Hampton Court? You were going to hire a wife? Where, may I ask?” The captain sounded as shocked as Angel. “You can buy anything on the docks, Carlisle,” St. Clair sneered. “You know that. It doesn’t matter anyway because an angel fell in my lap. Literally.” Angel stirred at the sound of glassware clinking and licked her dry lips. She was thirsty. If she called out they would hear and someone would come. But that would put a stop to this so fascinating conversation she should not be hearing. She felt a twinge of guilt and frowned, but it was not enough to move her from the wall. “She’s perfect, Jasp,” St. Clair was saying with surprising enthusiasm, “speaks fluent French and she is not averse to a fortnight of playacting. We will pull it off, I tell you.” “You mean to tell me you are planning to pass off some fancy piece as your wife? Lord, Dev, what if you meet someone you know? It’s sure to get back to your mother you are running around on the continent with some high‐flyer,” the captain shot back. “This isn’t a social trip,” St. Clair returned, sounding irritated. “There’s no reason for us to mingle with that flock in Paris.” Now the low voice held a warning. “Make no mistake. Angel may have lost her memory, but she is a lady, right and tight.” “No need to fly up in the boughs. Your judgment’s good enough for me. But if ...Angel is a lady, then what the devil is she doing with you?” St. Clair roared with laughter. “Oh, well done,” he gasped after a few minutes. “A hit, fair and square. No doubt she will be glad to get shot of me by the time we return, but for right now, she’s got nowhere else to go. Let me tell you the whole of it.” Angel sighed in relief as St. Clair related her story. She had been right to trust him. Very well. She would repay his kindness by playing the role of wife to perfection. He would have no reason to regret his rescue of her. She was about to slip away to bed when the conversation caught her attention once again. “Incredible. It sounds as fantastical as those old tales my nurse used to tell. Well, I hope you know what you’re about, my friend. You haven’t told her of the gold, I trust? The fewer to know of that, the better.” “Hell’s bells, Jasp. I hope I’m not such a fool,” came the scornful reply. “No need for her to know our mission. I will meet our contacts and get out as fast as possible.”
“You would be wise to do so.” The sober warning sent a shiver down Angel’s back. “War is just a matter of time, I’m afraid. The latest news from Malta is discouraging at best, and there’s no telling what Napoleon will decide to do once relations are broken.” Gold? Contacts? Angel had heard enough. She crawled back to the bunk, not daring to trust her balance. It would be best if they believed her ignorant of this business. She closed her eyes, exhausted and aching. She would need her wits about her when they reached France. ~* * *~ The Earl found her sleeping once again when he looked in sometime later. Just as well, he decided, conscious of a feeling of disappointment. Tomorrow would be soon enough for explanations. He placed a covered carafe of water on a shelf and set down the small portmanteau Ned had procured where she would see it upon waking. If she were like every other female of his acquaintance, the first thing she would ask for would be clothing, although Angel had more reason than most, he supposed. He hesitated, and unable to resist, walked the few steps to her berth and brushed his hand over the cloud of silken hair spread across the pillow. Her face was pale in the dim light and the bruise at her temple a startling patch of black against the smooth skin. He would find whoever it was who had dared to harm her. I will see her avenged, he vowed, and after one last caress went off to seek his own bed. ~* * *~ Angel awoke, clearheaded and with a raging thirst. She slipped from the bunk and looked around her, at once noting the carafe standing in a small basin on one of the railed shelves. A long drink did much to restore her, and she fell upon the trunk with a glad cry. Stockings, petticoats, even toiletries emerged and she silently thanked whoever had provided these things. She poured the remaining water into the basin, washed as well as possible with the scrap of linen she found, and gingerly removed the bandage from her shoulder. It was an unsightly gash, but there was no sign of infection. With several of the handkerchiefs she found tucked in the portmanteau, she improvised a less bulky covering to wedge in place under her chemise. It was well the deep rose‐coloured dress of soft linen buttoned at the front or she would not have been able to manage alone. Indeed, she had found the entire procedure quite fatiguing. Perhaps she was not accustomed to dressing herself. Now, washed and dressed, Angel rested on the edge of the bunk and studied the problem of her hair. She did not need a mirror to know it was a tangled mess. It was awkward, combing through the long strands with one hand, and less than a success, she suspected after a struggle that left her panting. It had always been unruly, her hair and…. The comb dropped from her hand. A memory! Angel tugged a handful of hair from her shoulder and stared at it. It was wavy, just as she remembered, and never stayed in place where it should. There, that was two things already today. Her hair, some names. Elated, she managed to gather her hair into a clumsy knot at the base of her neck, secure it with the pins she found in the trunk, and set about exploring the cabin. The port hole first. She pushed aside the curtain to peer through the thick glass, but only a broad expanse of deck and a thin strip of blue sky were visible. She turned away, uncertain as to what she should do. She was hungry and still thirsty. Dare she venture out alone? She peeked out the door into the dim passage. Non, this would not be wise. The idea of
encountering strange seamen made her wary. Instead, she contented herself with a more thorough examination of her surroundings. The discovery of several volumes tucked away on a shelf brought a rush of pleasure. She could read! Indeed, there was such a strong familiarity about the text when she skimmed a few random pages, she was certain she and Mr. Shakespeare were old friends. Book in hand, she curled up at one end of the bunk and was soon deeply engrossed. ~* * *~ “Entrée” At the response to his light tap, St. Clair opened the door and stepped aside to allow a lanky youth to enter and set down a tray on the table. “Oh, good morning.” Angel beamed at the blushing cabin boy, extracted herself from the bunk, and hurried to the table. Almost dancing with impatience, she waited until the lad set out the dishes and the instant he was out the door, slid into the chair bolted to the floor. She poured out a cup of steaming hot tea, then looked up at her visitor and smiled. “Pray forgive me, sir. I am hungry, you see, but there is more than enough for two. Will you not join me?” Smiling, he leaned casually against the wall. “Not today, Angel. I’ve already broken my fast, thank you.” Angel began to eat, her dainty manners no impediment to the consumption of everything on her plate. St. Clair watched intently, trying to equate this sunny creature with the pale, listless woman he carried aboard yesterday. True, a bruise still stained her temple and cheekbone, though perhaps it was somewhat lighter today, and it appeared her shoulder was a cause of discomfort, since she seemed to favor it, but her eyes were no longer clouded with pain. “No need to ask if you are feeling better,” he said when she had eaten her fill. “Oh, yes. Which is a very good thing, I think, for you could not be carrying me around forever, oui?” “Why, it was my pleasure, Angel,” he drawled. He swept her a bow and grinned when she stood and extended him the same courtesy with a graceful curtsy. “You have been wonderfully kind, my lord. Thank you for the clothing. It is quite refreshing to be rid of the old gown, as I am sure you would agree.” She gestured toward the rumpled dress lying on a low chest. “Though it may once have been a favorite of mine, one is bound to weary of anything worn interminably.” Her eyes widened at his peal of laughter, and a pleased little smile played on her lips as she slipped back into the chair. “Now what are we to do, my lord? When do we arrive in France? It might be best if you tell me a little of how I am to behave,” she added when he hesitated. “I would not like to spoil things by saying the wrong thing.” St. Clair’s eyes narrowed in thought. She was right in supposing ignorance could lead to trouble. Not to mention that she was entitled to some knowledge of their purpose here. He had a feeling, as well, judging from the look of excited expectancy on her expressive face, that she would not be a passive partner in the venture if she had her way. He was beginning to look forward to the next fortnight.
“You have the right of it, Angel, but you will be called upon to do little but accompany your husband, Mr. Williams, wine merchant extraordinaire,” he explained with a wry grin, “on a holiday in France. We will be docking in Le Havre soon. From there we go to Rouen and Amiens. You have only to act the doting wife, remember to address me as Mr. Williams, and no one will notice us at all. Not an impossible task, I trust.” He watched the sweep of expressions on her face, amused at her intent concentration. “Doubts?” he prompted. But she shook her head, her eyes sparkling with excitement. “Oh, no, it will be trés amusant, I think, to be Mrs. Williams. Angel Williams,” she said with relish. “It sounds very nice, n’est‐ce pas?” She tossed questions at him. Where did they reside in England? Did they have any children, or were they newly married? Would there be funds to purchase more clothing for her? St. Clair laughed and threw up his hands. “Enough! We will never disembark at all if I stay to answer all that. Already my head is spinning.” He put his hands to his temples, grimacing comically. She stared at him in amazement for a minute, and then started to laugh, a clear, delightful sound. It was the first time he had heard that lovely laughter, he realized, and determined then and there to provide her with amusement more often. “Minx,” he teased with a grin. He reached for her cloak and held out his hand to her. “It is already known we are recently married. As for the rest, of course you must have more clothing; Mr. Williams is an ordinary merchant, and what say you to London for our home?” He placed the cloak around her, careful not to jar her shoulder. “Come, let us go above. I wish you to meet the captain.” “That would be most pleasant, Mr. Williams,” she responded with a demure smile as she took his arm. “London would do very well, I need only a few gowns, and.…” She hesitated and he paused in the doorway, caught by the suggestive twitching of her lips. “Yes?” She looked up at him, a gleam of mischief in her eyes. “I think you anything but ordinary, Mr. Williams.” Delighted, he gave her a slow, devilish smile. “Aren’t you the saucy one this morning? The sea air must agree with you.” Unable to resist, he bent and lightly brushed his lips across her mouth. “A pleasant beginning, Mrs. Williams,” he said when he straightened, and feeling hugely satisfied at the stunned look on her face, St. Clair tucked her arm under his and guided her from the cabin. ~* * *~ Immediately captivated by the scene below, Angel clung to St. Clair’s arm as he led her to a sheltered spot on the upper deck where they would not be in the path of the busy crew. She hardly knew where to look first, equally fascinated by the efficient seamen going about the business of docking the ship, and the colourful tableau on the docks themselves. The air was sharp with the heavy tang of salt and fish and she took a deep breath. She hadn’t realized how stuffy and warm it had been below. Thoroughly enthralled, St. Clair had to speak to her several times before she could tear her eyes away to greet the captain.
“Captain Carlisle, may I present my wife, Mrs. Williams? Angel, Captain Carlisle. We owe our safe venture onto the high seas to him.” Carlisle bowed gracefully over her hand. “My pleasure, Mrs. Williams. We were fortunate enough to have a quiet passage. I hope you were comfortable?” “Yes, thank you. You have a lovely ship, Captain.” He seemed somewhat taken aback, and Angel wondered if she had erred in some way, but his rather stern countenance softened. “Thank you. The Lady Gay is never averse to praise.” He glanced at the Earl and moved a little distance along the deck, and with a quiet “excuse me”, St. Clair released her and joined him. Angel studied the Captain as the two men talked, frankly liking what she saw. A trifle shorter than the Earl, Carlisle had a lean, compact body that looked quite capable of a sailor’s hard life. His jet‐black hair, ruffled now by the breeze, deeply tanned skin, and his sharp brown eyes made an arresting combination. Not conventionally handsome, perhaps, but he would always command one’s attention. It was another mark in his favor that he had given not the slightest intimation she was anything but Mrs. Williams in reality, although she knew from the conversation she overheard during the night he was aware of the true situation. The easy manner between the two men was confirmation of her guess they were friends of long standing. Pleased to have her judgment validated, she returned her attention to the activity on the docks, content to enjoy the fresh air and sun on her face. Indeed, she was startled when St. Clair drew her close and placed her arm securely under his. He led the way to the gangplank being lowered with a noisy rattle. “Time to go ashore, Mrs. Williams,” he said, smiling down at her. “L’aventure commences. Shall we go?” Angel’s heart pounded in her breast so strongly she wondered if he could hear it. She set her shoulders and summoned a smile. “Oui, monsieur, let us begin.”
Chapter Six France, 1803 Angel stepped onto the pier and hesitated. At close quarters the noise was almost deafening, and it seemed impossible all these colourfully dressed men, so busy transferring cargo to and from the ships ranged against the piers, could keep track of where everything belonged. It was a stirring scene of much confusion and she was glad to have the strong support of St. Clair’s arm as he led her to a row of buildings where they could wait in relative calm while the coach was unloaded; a slow, complicated process. Ned arrived with the horses and the hired groom, Anton, who would assist him, just as the last rope was unfastened. Angel smiled at Ned and would have stopped to speak with this friendly‐faced man, but St. Clair was already handing her up the steps. Once inside, she eagerly inspected the faded interior. It was a foolish hope, of course. There was nothing the worn squabs and somewhat lumpy seat cushions could tell her of her origins. Masking her disappointment, she turned to find St. Clair’s eyes on her. “Where are we bound today?” she asked as casually as she could manage, not wanting to admit anything other than a bed would be less than enjoyable. The burst of energy that had seen her through the morning was waning. “If it is any consolation to you, the captain had one of the crew look over the coach,” he said. She felt the colour flood her cheeks at the realization he had noticed her interest. “You must think me silly.” “On the contrary, I think it very natural for you to be interested in where you were found. But in truth, I don’t believe this coach to hold any memories for you. It is my opinion you were running away from something that frightened you and you took shelter in here.” “Oh.” Her head came up at that. “Do you think so? Truly?” A frown creased her forehead as she considered the idea. “But what would frighten me so? And how did I come to be injured?” Now he did smile and with the lightest of touches erased the line on her forehead with one finger. “Yes, I truly think so. And while I don’t know what threatened you to such an extent, I will make it my business to find out, as soon as we return to England. “D’accord?” “D’accord,” she agreed. There was such assurance in his voice that some of the stiffness in her back eased. All would be well. She needed only to be patient. “I thought to stay here in the city tonight. I, for one, would like nothing better than a long hot bath, a decent meal and a good night’s rest before embarking on this journey.” He looked questioningly at her. “That is, if you agree?” “It sounds wonderful,” she admitted, giving him a grateful look. A smile played on his lips. “I am glad, my dear, for we are arriving at the hôtel just now, I believe. Carlisle sent someone ahead to make the arrangements, so we are expected.” He assisted her down the steps before the stately concierge could reach them and there was an audible murmur of speculation amongst the employees of the elegant establishment.
Angel was aware they were the subject of much interest as they entered the hôtel. She peered sideways at St. Clair. Had he set out to achieve just such an effect? His face held an expression of such disinterest in his surroundings she could not decide, though he whistled under his breath as he examined their suite, which consisted of two rooms, a bedroom and a sitting room that held a comfortable looking sofa. “Sit down, Angel,” he instructed in a rough voice. He guided her to a chaise lounge in the bedroom. “You look ready to drop. I’ll arrange to have a chambermaid sent up and a bath if you wish. Then you are to rest until the dressmaker arrives.” Startled, she stared at him in consternation. “Dressmaker?” “Yes, a dressmaker,” he repeated, his look daring her to protest. “You will need some clothes as to befit your station, Mrs. Williams,” he said by way of explanation as he left her, in that abrupt manner she was coming to dislike. The man had a maddening way of disappearing before she had the chance to say a word. She was so weary, however, that she was willing enough to follow his instructions without argument. This time, at least. The meal that arrived soon after was excellent, the prospect of a bath a delight. Angel lingered at the table while a procession of servants brought a hipbath and buckets of steaming water into the bedroom. She was trying to decide if she would be able to manage undressing alone when a neatly clad maid entered the room with an armload of linens. “I am Suzanne, Madame. I’ve been assigned to assist you with the bath and anything else you need,” the young woman said. Her face showed none of the curiosity and speculation Angel expected, having arrived as she had with only a small portmanteau, in a plain gown and hair escaping from its pins. But she had agreed with the Earl that a carriage accident would serve well as an explanation for the curious, and now seemed a perfect opportunity to settle any speculation about them. They were enough of a curiosity already, just being from England. “I need a bath.” Angel declared with a rueful smile. “It has been most unpleasant, I assure you, not having my belongings to hand. Almost everything was ruined in the carriage accident. Indeed, we are fortunate to be alive, so I should not complain, but there it is, it is the little things that bother one the most.” “Of course, Madame, that is often the way,” Suzanne agreed. She laid aside the linens and looked questioningly at Angel. “You will allow?” She gestured toward Angel’s gown. “Yes, please.” She tried not to wince as her dress was eased from her shoulders. “But you are injured!” Suzanne exclaimed in concern. “It is not serious, but if you would look to see if it is healing properly?” Angel stepped into the warm water with a sigh, standing just long enough for the maid to remove the bandage before she slid down until the water covered her breasts. “This is wonderful.” Angel sighed with pleasure and closed her eyes. She felt the maid’s gentle fingers examine her shoulder. “It looks well, Madame. I will bring some fresh linen to dress it again, after I do your hair.” Suzanne washed and rinsed Angel’s hair, chattering about other carriage mishaps, not seeming to expect a reply. Which Angel realized, was a good thing, since she did not feel
capable of coherent conversation. She emerged from the tub feeling too weary to do more than stand passively while Suzanne patted her dry, wrapped a robe around her, and toweled the water from her hair before twisting it into a loose braid. Then she succumbed to the inviting expanse of the large bed and was asleep before Suzanne finished tidying the room. ~* * *~ Angel was enjoying the luxury of having her hair dressed when St. Clair tapped at the door. “Angel? Are you finished? The dressmaker is here with the gowns for your approval.” He put his head inside the door. Angel’s face heated under his slow, appreciative appraisal. “I will be there directly.” The words came out in a rush and she pulled her robe more tightly around her. “Such a modest little wife you are,” he teased, and gave her a mocking smile. “No need for it, love. You look charming as always.” He disappeared, leaving her to the ministrations of the interested attendant. “You are fortunate to have so fond a husband, Madame,” Suzanne said with a knowing smile that made Angel feel even more uncomfortable. “Enjoy it while you may. The joys of the marriage bed are best savored when young.” Angel kept her eyes on her lap, after one quick horrified peek in the mirror at her scarlet face. Responding automatically to the chattering maid, she struggled to subdue her embarrassment. They were bound to be in very intimate circumstances for the next fortnight. It was shockingly improper, of course, but what choice had she now? It was far too late to worry about the improprieties at this point. Besides, he hadn’t forced her to come. It was her choice, and who would know, after all? They knew no one in France, and she had no doubt St. Clair would behave as the gentleman he was. Still clad in her robe, Angel followed the maid into the sitting room a few minutes later. St. Clair sat at ease on the long sofa, talking to a fashionably clad woman, whose appearance aroused instant pangs of envy and jealousy in Angel’s breast. It was an effort to greet the attractive dressmaker pleasantly. Her attempt to hide her feelings was a failure, it seemed, for a look of understanding flashed in the Frenchwoman’s eyes, but the woman was clever enough to keep her thoughts to herself and defer all decisions to Angel. If only St. Clair would do the same, Angel thought grumpily. He had very definite ideas about what would suit her. Reluctant to oppose him, Angel agreed to most of his choices, though she was appalled at the number of gowns he seemed to feel necessary for her wardrobe. But when she was shown a bolt of the finest silk, a deep blue that matched her eyes, she could not refrain from protesting. “It will take time to make up so elaborate a gown,” she said softly, trying to think of a way to justify her refusal. She knew it was foolish, after all he had done for her, but somehow it seemed quite wrong to accept such an expensive gown from a man she hardly knew. She laid one hand on his. She was learning to recognize that look of mulish stubbornness around his mouth. “Surely we cannot wait, Mr. Williams.” There was a speculative look in his eyes as he gazed at her and for a moment she thought he was going to object. “Please? I would much prefer it, sir.”
“Would you?” he said with a lift of one brow. “Very well, if that is what you wish.” He covered her hand with his and held her close by his side while he discussed arrangements with Madame to make what alterations were necessary and return all in the morning, choosing but one dress of figured, soft white muslin for Angel to wear now. Then he sent her off to dress with a laughing leer that brought a hot blush to her cheeks once more. Embarrassed, and ruing her revealing colour, Angel rushed from the room, the Earl’s laughter ringing in her ears. She closed the door behind her with a decided snap and leaned against the wide panels until the rapid beating of her pulse subsided. If she needed any proof of her apparent inexperience with men, her reaction to the St. Clair’s simple teasing provided it. He would think her a silly child if she didn’t stop acting like a schoolgirl. She needed to be as cool and sophisticated as the dressmaker. Angel suspected that was easier said than done, but she would do it, and resolution firmly in place, she rang for a maid to help her to dress for supper. ~* * *~ Angel was the first to wake the next morning. At least so it seemed, as there was not a sound coming from the outer room. She stretched, pleased to feel so well. It was pleasant to have this little time to lie cozily in the comfortable bed and think about her situation. She touched the ring Devlin had slipped on her finger the previous evening. A smile curled her lips at the memory. He was so kind and thoughtful of her. Why, it was almost as if she was his wife. For a little while she let herself pretend it was not an act, that they were married in truth, but Angel felt uncomfortable allowing daydreams to displace reality for long. Sighing, she climbed from bed and took herself to task. A lovely dream, certainement, but even supposing she regained her memory and found her family, she doubted very much if she was a suitable wife for an earl. Determining then and there not to let her feelings show, she nodded in approval at her reflection. The bruise was fading, her eyes were clear and bright and even to herself she looked positively glowing. Ah bien, it seemed this strange adventure agreed with her. She would enjoy every hour as it came. The future could wait. ~* * *~ The boxes containing her wardrobe arrived while they were eating a light meal. “You have twenty minutes to choose something and make ready, Angel.” St. Clair tossed his serviette on the table and rose. “Let the maid pack everything into the trunk.” Her mouth dropped open. “Twenty minutes! You cannot be serious, sir. It will take that long just to choose something.” He shrugged. “Then be prepared to be carried out in your shift. Ned is bringing the horses around now and I won’t have them kept standing.” With an annoying grin on his face, he added briskly, “I suggest you get started.” He was out the door before she could gather her wits together. She was tempted to throw something after him, but her own common sense and the entrance of the chambermaid quickly squashed that notion. She was very sure he meant every word, no matter how civil he sounded. “Suzanne,” Angel wailed. She began to tear open the boxes, determined to get the best of him. If he said twenty minutes, she would do it in nineteen!
Angel walked down the stairs to the lobby exactly nineteen minutes later, trailed by a servant with her newly purchased trunk. She couldn’t help the smug little smile she felt touching her lips when she saw the faint look of surprise in his eyes. “Well done, my lady wife,” he drawled. He took her arm and looked down at her with a wry smile. “Although I must admit it would be more rewarding if you were tardy.” It took a moment for the import of his words to register, than she jerked her chin up with a sniff. “Wretched man,” she muttered. Certain all eyes were upon them, Angel marched out to the coach, resisting the urge to cover her hot cheeks with her hands. Ned was there to help her in, and she used the few minutes it took to load her trunk to gather her composure. St. Clair would tease her. Had she already forgotten her vow to behave with some sophistication? Really, Angel! She was not about to admit that part of her discomfort was the thought of having him pick her up when she was wearing nothing but her shift. Angel studiously studied the courtyard through the coach’s small window while St. Clair climbed in and took the bench opposite. She sensed his gaze on her but kept her eyes firmly on the passing scene as the coach rattled through the town. The narrow streets were crowded with drays, carts, carriages, and riders of every description. Ned must be a skilled driver to be able to avoid all these obstacles, and with a hired team, too. There was much of interest in the busy scene, and she felt her pique fade away. Once in the countryside, however, there was less to see. Small farms for the most part, with fields freshly plowed, interspersed with the occasional bit of woodland. From time to time she stole a glance at the Earl, stretched out against the squabs with eyes half closed. Perhaps he was asleep. He looked too relaxed to be awake. The rhythmic clopping of the horses’ hoofs was enough to make anyone tired. ~* * *~ “Wake up, sleepy head.” Angel drifted comfortably in her dream. Strange that she would be holding feathers in her hands, but it was a dream, after all. Anything was allowed in a dream. The feathers tickled against her palms and her hands were so lovely and warm. If that voice would just go away…. “Angel, wake up.” “Feathers?” she whispered, her fingers curling around something sturdy and firm. She opened her eyes, a soft smile on her lips. “Devlin, I dreamt you were feathers.” “Did you? How odd. I’ve never been a feather before.” His face was inches from hers and she felt her skin heat under the look of warm amusement in his eyes. Unconsciously, she licked her dry lips, and the laughter flashed into something hot and dangerous. She shivered under his heated gaze. “Devlin?” It was a whisper, but enough it seemed, to break the spell. “You appear to have very unusual dreams, Angel,” he said a little sharply. He eased back and released her hands. “We are stopping soon to rest the horses and have a light meal, if you are interested.” His face held nothing but polite inquiry, and she dropped her eyes. It seemed they were to make nothing of the sudden flare between them. Uncomfortable at the thought she had misread him, she turned to gather up her shawl.
“But of course,” she said. “Food is always of interest to me. Will we stop at an inn?” She peered out the window to avoid seeing his expression. “Not this time. Anton knows of a stream where he and Ned can water the horses. If possible, we will picnic. I had the hôtel prepare a basket,” he explained in a more agreeable tone. “Angel?” “Yes?” She kept her eyes on the window, not wishing to face him right now. She needed time to regain her composure. Something he sensed, perhaps, since there was a long pause before she heard a muttered, “Nothing.” The coach slowed and St. Clair opened the door, jumped to the ground before it came to a complete stop, and returned a few minutes later with a large basket. “We will have to eat in the coach, I’m afraid,” he apologized as he lifted the basket onto the seat. “There is no suitable place outside.” Angel moved aside and began to unpack the various foodstuffs. She had no objection to eating in the coach. It was far more important to her that the meal did much to restore his good nature. When he began to tease her for licking her fingers clean of the savory cheese spread on thick slices of bread, the friendly, casual manner between them resumed, much to Angel’s relief. She took a last swallow of cider and handed him her mug to be stowed away. “That was very nice. How clever of you to think of it.” “I am a very clever fellow,” he said with a laugh as he placed the basket under the seat. “Not to mention one who likes a good meal as much as anyone. I am pleased you enjoyed it.” He signaled to Ned and the coach began to move. “Please tell me of Rouen, sir. Do we make a long stay there?” Angel asked when he appeared to have settled comfortably. She was determined not to spend the remaining hours of the journey in silence and in any case, did not like feeling so ignorant of things. “I don’t know much about Rouen,” he allowed. “Much like Le Havre, I imagine. It is a busy port and we will be there several days. Long enough for you to have a look around, if you wish. I expect you will want to stand on the very spot where Joan of Arc met her fiery fate, and weep.” “Sainte Jeanne d’Arc?” Angel gasped. “Mais non, I could not. So terrible a death! I do not believe people want to be reminded of so gruesome a thing and you wish to tease me,” she declared with an indignant sniff. St. Clair laughed and threw up a hand in mock surrender. “Pax, Angel. No one will make you view the scene. Although it seems most of our compatriots must be a hardy lot, for the English have an avid interest in such things, I’m told. In fact, they flock in droves to view any grisly remains available for inspection.” His eyebrows rose in that mocking expression she had learned was meant to aggravate, but this time she refused the bait and sent him a knowing look. “Now I am sure you are jesting, Mr. Williams. I don’t know of anyone who would wish to see old bones.” “You don’t know anyone,” he retorted, his grin taking the sting from the words. Angel smiled back, undisturbed by this reminder of her reluctant memory.
“That is so, and perhaps when I learn who my friends are, I will find them all to be great admirers of ancient relics. But not me, I think. I am not so curious as that.” “All females are curious,” he said with a casual shrug that was quite provoking. “Oh, unfair, sir! All people are curious, not only females,” cried Angel, ready to do battle at this slur to her sex. “Women are the worst, you must admit, always poking about into other people’s business.” “Oh, again you are unfair, sir. That is slander indeed!” She drew herself up. “‘Curiosity is one of the permanent and certain characteristics of a vigorous intellect’,” she quoted, along with a haughty tip of her chin. He stared at her for a second and then whooped with laughter. “By gad, no one will ever believe me,” he choked out. “A waif that quotes Johnson at me. Angel, you are wonderful.” He leaned over and planted a kiss on her cheek. Angel felt the blood rise in her face, but she grinned back at him, quite pleased to have made him laugh. “Now tell me of your friend, Captain Carlisle,” Angel said after a while, when the subject of the foibles of the sexes was exhausted. “What? Curious, little one?” He looked at her with a crooked smile, amusement in his eyes. “Perhaps.” Angel assumed what she hoped was a look of cool indifference and tipped her head in question. “Oh, well done, my dear,” he said with an admiring look. “That was worthy of a duchess, at least.” He reached out and flicked a finger against her cheek. “You never cease to surprise me.” Angel pouted and turned her head away, ignoring his chuckles. “Carlisle, is it?” he said after a short pause. “A man could not wish for a finer friend than Jasper. Though he isn’t one for the ladies,” St. Clair warned, “if that’s what you are leading up to.” Angel swung around to glare at him. “It is not,” she denied. “I simply wish to learn of your friend.” She was certain his skeptical expression was quite deliberate and she smiled to herself. He seemed to look for ways to provoke her, and no wonder, since she always rose to the bait. But she enjoyed it as well, this gentle teasing, and she felt more at ease with him hourly. “Ah, I see. Well, in that case I am happy to oblige.” He laced his fingers together behind his neck and leaned back. “We go back a ways, Jasper and I, from our days at Eton. I haven’t seen as much of him as I would like, these last few years. A sailor doesn’t spend much time in port. Besides, I think Carlisle is more at home on the open sea than doing the pretty in the London salons, though we had some fine times in our salad days. Carlisle’s a great gun, always up to any rig.” He fell silent, a reminiscent smile on his lips. “What of his family?” Angel prompted. “They must be unhappy to have him away so often.” St. Clair shot her a searching glance. “He isn’t married, if that is what interests you, except maybe to the Lady Gay.”
“That information does not interest me especially,” she said with a puzzled frown at his suspicious tone. “There is more to a family than a wife. Surely his Maman would wish him to be home now and again.” St. Clair shrugged. “I suppose she does. But there are not many choices for a younger son and Carlisle was wild to go to sea since he was a boy.” He grinned. “The Captain is not an easy man to deter, once he gets an idea into that thick head of his. He swore he would have a ship of his own by the time he was thirty, which he did. Cost me a monkey, too, since I’d bet him he couldn’t do it. I suspect he was determined I should lose, the fiend.” “The ‘Lady Gay’ is his own?” “Yes. Sometime you must get him to tell you how he acquired her.” St. Clair straightened as he spoke and peered out the window. “Can you not tell me now?” He turned to face her and shook his head. “I could, but I won’t. Not my story, you understand. Carlisle will tell you when it suits him. Besides, there isn’t time just now. We are entering Rouen.” Angel turned to stare at the old, haphazard buildings lining the street as the coach wound through the crowded thoroughfares. Fascinated by the scene, she was only drawn from the window when the Earl’s hands closed on her shoulders and moved her around to face him. Surprised, she stared at him. “What is it? Is aught amiss?” she whispered. Her lips parted in unconscious invitation and he took in a quick breath before he dropped his hands and sat back against the squabs as if scalded. Gracious, what was wrong with the man? Angel blinked and bit her lower lip. What had she done wrong? “No need to look so worried.” His mouth twisted in a wry smile. “I just wanted to speak to you before we arrive at the inn. I know I have told you little of my purpose here, but we arrive a day later than expected. It may well necessitate a sudden change of plans. Just follow my lead, say as little as possible and don’t forget you are on your wedding journey.” Angel felt the tension fade from her face and she smiled. “I will be a model wife, Mr. Williams, I promise you, and do just as you say.” St. Clair looked closely at her for a minute and seemed to relax. He gave her an easy smile and tugged gently on one of her curls. “I know you will. I have a case of last minute nerves, I suppose. The truly wonderful, marvelous, exemplary Mr. and Mrs. Williams could not possibly fail. Oui?” He put an arm around her shoulder and pulled her close. “Oui, monsieur,” Angel agreed. She leaned against him, secure in the comfort of his arms, and he did not seem inclined to dislodge her.
Chapter Seven It was this pleasant indication of intimacy that greeted the concierge when the door of the coach opened. Monsieur Noailles’ black eyes gleamed with interest at the new arrivals. "Bonjour, Madame, Monsieur. Welcome. I trust your journey was agreeable?" St. Clair assisted Angel from the coach, assuring their host of a pleasant trip as he did so. They followed the sharp‐eyed innkeeper across the attractively appointed lobby and up a short flight of stairs to a room at one end of the long hallway. Monsieur Noailles opened the door and stepped back to allow them entrance, murmuring apologies that it was not the suite requested, but one of his finest rooms and he hoped they would find things satisfactory. St. Clair took one look at the single large bed tucked under the eaves and opened his mouth to protest. "Madame and Monsieur were delayed, a party of French officers had arrived unexpectedly, and I could do nothing else," Monsieur Noailles explained with a quick shrug and airy gesture of hands. Warned by the mulish set of St. Clair’s mouth, Angel halted her exploration of the quaint room and touched him on the arm to distract him. “But it is charming. I am sure we will be quite comfortable. Oh, and you must see this, Mr. Williams." She tugged him over to the wall directly facing the bed, where a large sampler, obviously embroidered by a child, hung above the dresser. Her back now to their host, Angel sent the Earl a speaking glance. "These are marvelous. Look, there is one for every letter of the alphabet. Do you see?" She pointed to each one as she read them out. “L'alouette, la balle, la chaise, la.…” "Yes, I see. Very nice." St Clair interrupted her recitation. He turned to the landlord and managed to convey with a gesture and a faint smile both the delightful vagarities of the female mind and their acceptance of the room. Bowing low, their host departed, promising to send up anything they desired, including a meal. "My goodness, sir," Angel protested as soon as they were alone. “The pictures are wonderful. Can you imagine how many hours some dear little girl spent with her needle? Besides, you were going to make a scene and that would attract attention to us.” St. Clair threw himself into a chair, for all the world like a petulant schoolboy, Angel noted, hiding a smile. She had a fair idea what was bothering his lordship. The cozy double bed had sent her mind skittering in unlooked for directions as well. "I was not going to make a scene," he said behind gritted teeth. Angel perched on the edge of the bed. “Oh? Then, what were you going to do?" she asked, schooling her expression into a mixture of polite interest and skepticism. "Make a scene, probably," St. Clair growled with ill grace, but a sheepish smile tugged at his lips. "Confound it, Angel, I don't fancy sleeping on the floor," he admitted. “We were meant to have a suite." Trying not to laugh at his look of outrage, Angel struggled to keep her voice steady. "You won't need to sleep on the floor." She patted the quilt beside her. "The bed is large enough for us both."
His reaction was all she could have wished. He jumped to his feet and stalked toward her, a scowl on his face. "You can't go around saying things like that to strange men. It isn't at all the thing, you know, and liable to land you in a heap of trouble." "But," she broke in when he paused for breath, "you are not a strange man, you are my husband." The demurely spoken words were accompanied by what she hoped was a convincing look of wide‐eyed innocence. Then his startled expression broke her composure and a giggle escaped. Hastily, she put her fingers to her mouth. St. Clair eyed her warily, comprehension dawning in his eyes. “So the angel has claws." His mouth twitched in almost a smile. "I believe I've been led nicely down the garden path, love. You did deliberately try to shock me?" “Perhaps a little," she admitted with a quick smile. "We cannot be too finicky in this situation, sir. Besides, if I sleep under the quilt and you sleep on top, we shall be quite decorous.” She spoke with brisk practicality and looked up at him with a questioning tilt to her head. "Perhaps Monsieur Noailles will supply you with another blanket.” Her voice indicated only the slightest of interest in the outcome and for a second time that evening, St. Clair looked taken aback, and then roared with laughter. “What a heartless creature you are," he said when he sobered enough to talk. "You've worked things out quite coolly and I suppose I should be thankful it isn't a cold night." He grasped her chin in his fingers and stared down at her, his mouth tight and face stern. "I am tired enough to try your plan, little one. But there is something you should remember. My name may be saint, but it is the only thing saintly about me. Do not tease me too much. You might not like the consequences." For a moment, desire gleamed in his eyes, and Angel shivered under that heated gaze. He gave her a mocking smile and dropped his hand to his side. "Now suppose you unpack while I see about ordering our supper. I will send a chambermaid up to help you." He was gone before she could reply. Bemused, Angel sank onto the bed. He’d meant to frighten her, she believed, but her tremor had been from excitement, not fear. She was attracted to him and would take this warning to heart. Theirs must remain a friendly, pragmatic relationship. They were here for a purpose and she had promised to help him. That meant not foisting unwanted feelings of girlish infatuation on him. Brought on by proximity, no doubt, she told herself sternly. Certainement, it would not be wise to become too attached to him. After this was over, he would find her family and go his way. For the first time all day, depression engulfed her. She buried her head in her hands. Why could she not remember? It seemed so close at times, but trying to force those shadowy pictures in her mind to clarity gained her nothing but a headache. Sighing, she raised her head. Patience, she would need patience. ~* * *~ St. Clair nursed his brandy with a clear conscience, ignoring the rumble of voices that eddied around him in the well‐populated lounge. After the first quick, curious look, no one paid any attention to him. Rouen was accustomed to strangers, which suited him well. He
toyed with his glass as he reviewed his conversation with Angel. Perhaps he had overreacted, but her words had struck a nerve, for he had instantly pictured her naked and inviting on the wide bed. He felt a stir in his groin and took a gulp of the fiery liquor in his glass. So she was a delight, a damned entertaining little baggage, in truth, and the most appealing woman he’d ever met. This had to stop. He had to keep her at arm's length or he would end up having the seduction of a young innocent on his head. Maybe if circumstances were different.… Firmly, he turned his mind from that fruitless path. Things were as they were and he would return to England with his honour intact, no matter if it half killed him. It wouldn’t hurt him to practice a little self‐restraint. He’d never heard of anyone who died of abstinence! The thought made him grin, and he polished off his brandy and went to join his Angel. They enjoyed a well‐prepared meal together in their room, conversing easily, and afterwards whiled away an hour with the deck of cards St. Clair had obtained. The comically confusing arrangements of blankets and bodies erased any lingering restraint by the time they were snugly, and separately, cocooned on the bed. It had been a long day. Both were weary and inclined to sleep. "Bonne nuit, Devlin," Angel murmured. "Good night, Angel.” He reached out and snuffed the candle. A deep hush seemed to envelope the inn and he drowsed slowly into sleep, the warm body beside him a warm comfort abruptly shattered when she sat up and shouted into the darkness. "Le kangouron, le lait, la maison… I remember! I lived in ‘The House’." St Clair opened one eye. "Most people do," he answered, more than half asleep. She giggled and gave him a nudge before she lay back down. "Yes, of course they do, silly. But that is not what I meant at all. My home is called ‘The House’. I remember it very well now, and it is near the coast, I am sure of it." "Oh, well, then," he replied with a sleepy chuckle. “That certainly narrows it down." Her soft laughter made him smile. After all, England was an island. ~* * *~ Robert Entremont, known to his peers as the Compté d’Laraque, sat behind his desk and stared coldly at the three men ranged before him. The Jervey brothers wore expressions of mingled fear and belligerence, not unusual for the two old salts; Philip Radell had the look of sullen reluctance that so often appeared on the gentleman’s face. The Englishman was becoming more unreliable every day; something would need to be done about him soon. Entremont tapped his pen against the desktop in the steady, monotonous sound he found an effective method of intimidation, as well as an outlet for the rage that boiled through him. “Have I heard you correctly? You have lost the girl?” he asked in a voice so hard the men unconsciously stepped back a pace. “Two husky men could not manage to hold on to one female? Perhaps her servants discovered her and overpowered all of you, for some slip of a girl could hardly do so.” The biting sarcasm drove the men back another step. Radell reddened, his eyes hot. “It was no doing of mine. I did my part and picked up supplies for those two.” He gave a curt nod towards the two former seamen. “Helped give her
another dose of sleeping draught. You couldn’t have expected I stay to guard her! I left her locked up well enough, and Jake and Jed there to watch her.” “Well enough? Well enough to allow her escape,” Entremont spat out with a slap of his hand on the desk. He looked at the younger man in disgust, and Radell involuntarily started toward him, then subsided, his face tight with anger and fear. “I will have the entire story, exactly as it happened.” Le Compté pinned the hapless Jed with an icy stare that would have cowered the most intrepid of men and the burly man’s face reddened. “It was her that did it. Who would have any notion she had the gumption to climb out the window and down a tree? No female should be doing such a thing,” Jed whined. “Oh, so that is your reasoning? You are stupid enough to let a woman best you and then blame it on her? ” Radell gave him a scathing look. “Well, where were you? Off to London having a high ol’ time whilst we were stuck in some broken down old house in the woods.” “Enough,” Entremont said sharply. “I don’t want your opinions on the role of females, mister. I want to know what happened and what you have done about it.” “I was not having a high old time,” Radell began. “You, you will be silent.” Entremont glared at the Englishman, daring him to object, but it seemed Radell was not that much of a fool. “It was like this,” Jed began hurriedly, obviously not eager to be the recipient of another tongue‐lashing. “We took her to the cottage, just as you told us to do, and none the wiser, being we was gone before her men got back. That tap on the head you gave her was a good un’. There was never a peep outta her, not even when we carried her up and put her onto a bed.” “Not a peep,” Jake echoed with a fierce shake of his head. “The door was locked right enough and the windows covered. No question she would be out a good while and soons she stirred we dosed her with that draught, like Radell said.” “She were still asleep come morning, and it black as sin in that room, which would keep any sensible body from wanting to be awake.” Jed took up the story in a rush. “It seems the lady was not particularly sensible, doesn’t it?” Entremont scowled at his blundering underling. “Do go on with this edifying tale. Why did she wake up, do you suppose, given that laudanum is usually quite effective in keeping one asleep? You did, of course, give her another dose?” The brothers exchanged a quick glance, for a draught at noon was the last that second day, them being well into a jug by supper. “A’course we did,” Jake answered promptly, having a good sense of self‐preservation. “She was sleeping like a baby when we checked sommat later, before we went to have a bit of something to eat.” “A bit of something to drink as well, I feel sure.” Entremont pinned Jed with a look that stopped his stuttering attempt to reply. “Very wise, my friend.” Le Compté stood and leaned forward, one hand braced against the desktop, while the other beat a slow rhythm with the pen. He looked at the men thoughtfully. Of the two seamen, Jed had more upstairs than his
brother, Jake, though that was not saying much. Up until now, however, the Frenchman had found them capable of following orders and lacking any of the scruples that might interfere with their assignments. This assignment should have been simple enough. Hide away the eavesdropping Miss Deveneau for a week while he finalized his plans and sent word to her grandfather as to her whereabouts. Now, who knew what complications the troublesome chit would cause him? Radell stirred, restless under that scrutiny, and he started to edge toward the door. Entremont let him get close enough to grope for the knob. “Stay, Radell, You will stay, will you not? You would not care to leave this sad affair for me to clean up, now would you?” The younger man froze and nodded. The look on his face made it clear it was what he would like to do. Entremont was quite aware the Englishman wanted out. This play was too deep for him. But thoughts of his unpaid vows and the bailiffs waiting to descend would keep him in Entremont’s hands until he was ready to discard him. “What do you want me to do?” Radell spat out the words. “And what of them? They were the ones who let her get away.” He glowered at the other men. “You was just as much at fault as we was,” Jed began. “You were all at fault. You will take care of this appalling mess now,” Entremont commanded. “Get back to Hampshire, find the Deveneau chit, and this time,” he paused and swept the room with a chilling stare, “make sure she stays hidden. Do you understand?” He bit out the last words in a tone that should leave no doubt in their minds they would not like the consequences of failure. “The girl has not vanished into thin air, you imbeciles. She had to take shelter somewhere and it had to be somewhere well out of the way or the hue and cry would be loud enough to hear in London. If you don’t think her servants went right to her grandfather, you are more fools than I thought.” Jed and Jake traded one frightened look and fled out the door. Radell made to follow, but Entremont was not quite finished with the Englishman. “A few weeks more, Radell, and this will be ended. Remember, she saw your face as well. I don’t think you would like your recent activities made public? Ah, I see we are in agreement.” Entremont answered for him when alarm flared on Radell’s face. “You will hold yourself ready to join the search if the girl is not,” he paused for effect, eyes narrowed, “recollected, shall we say, in the very near future. You may even choose to begin at once.” Radell nodded curtly and hurried from the room and this time, no threatening voice prevented his departure. Le Compté walked to the window to gaze out onto the London street, lit faintly by the watchman’s light at the corner. He despised the dirty, crowded city, so unlike Paris, with its wide boulevards and charming cafes. Here, where the hoi polloi rubbed shoulders with the nobility and the servants so often dared to speak out of turn. Mon Dieu, he would be glad to see the end of it. Quit this cold, damp island and return to France. Where he had some old business to take care of as well, he had recently learned. Who would imagine the bitch had survived and had the audacity to work against him?
For that matter, who would believe chance would throw Deveneau’s daughter in his path? She was just like her father, poking her nose into affairs that were none of her concern. If he were a superstitious man, he could almost believe the capricious mischance that had landed the girl at that particular inn after her coach accident to be an ill omen. He turned back to his desk and looked at the reports stacked neatly on the top. It was almost enough. Just a little more information would make him very welcome in France; he would also have ample funds as well once he had visited a certain house in Amiens. He gathered up his notes and paused at the door to take another look around the room. It was not wise to leave papers lying around for anyone to read, a truth these Englishmen often forgot, as he knew to his benefit. His mind on that tiresome girl, he paced slowly along the hall. It would be beneficial to Radell and company to find her quickly. They would not like the consequences should he need to attend to the matter personally. He wanted her back, and soon. There was a chance, small perhaps, but possible, that he would have need of her before this was done. A careful man left nothing to chance, and he was a careful man.
Chapter Eight Angel awoke to bright sunshine that exactly suited her mood. Eager to explore her surroundings and feeling better than she had in days, she threw back the covers and stretched. Oh, that was such a good feeling and so nice not to ache all over. Humming softly, she rose, washed, and dressed. St. Clair was already gone, his blanket neatly folded at the end of the bed. Should she wait or go in search of him? Undecided as to what he would prefer her to do, she spent some time making the room tidy, unpacking just enough clothing for their stay in Rouen. Trying to ignore the rumblings of her stomach, she occupied herself with reading the sampler yet again. But le Zebre was reached all too soon and the faint cries coming from the courtyard below her window were a welcome distraction. Curious, she pushed open the small casement and peered out. “Mon Dieu,” she breathed, astonished at the scene below. A tall, white‐aproned man flourished a huge cleaver, hard on the heels of a sprightly lad. The boy was just about managing to stay one step ahead of his pursuer, burdened as he was with something large, white, and squawking in his arms. Nimbly avoiding the cook’s sudden lunge, he leaped to the relative safety of a low shed roof, his shouts of “Non, non, monsieur,” mingling with the angry roars of the Frenchman advancing furiously upon his quarry. Angel sped for the door, the rising noise drawing her along the narrow corridor to a steep flight of stairs leading to an enormous kitchen. With barely a second’s hesitation at the sight of the staff going unconcernedly about their work, she plunged across the room and burst out into the courtyard. How they could ignore this commotion, she could not imagine. She paused for a quick look around her. The boy did an agile dance on the roof to avoid the wickedly close swipes of the angry cook, or so she supposed him to be; the duck in the boy’s arms quacked loudly, and a near‐by dog had joined in the cacophony with ear‐splitting shrill yaps. A duck? One small part of Angel’s brain registered this unlikely bit of information as she took a deep breath. “Arrêt!” she shouted at the top of her lungs. As if frozen by the brush of some clever artist, for a long moment all movement ceased; only a single, final squawk sounded loudly in the silence. Nonplussed at this reaction to her startlingly loud order to halt, Angel watched the cook turn to face her, his astonishment giving way to an expression of outraged indignation. Unconsciously, her chin came up. “How dare you interfere, you, you….” he spluttered, so wrapped in his ire that he could barely speak. There followed a tirade of colloquial French Angel found close to incomprehensible, something she suspected was just as well, judging from what little she did understand. She waited until he stopped for a breath, edging towards the shed as she spoke. “Very well done, monsieur. You do have a way with words.” She sent him a look of sweetly amazed innocence, which he appeared to view with justifiable suspicion. “However,” she hurried on, seeing his expression. “I cannot allow you to attack this poor boy. It is not at all the thing, you understand, to go around assaulting people. You surely would not wish the trouble it would bring.”
She babbled all this in so natural a manner the man stood mouth agape, making no move to stop her steady progress towards the boy. The cook muttered a few words. “Oh, I see. You meant just to murder the duck. But you see, I really cannot allow you to do that either. I’m sure you can find another victim.” Her back touched the side of the shed. “Come with me, garcon,” she said without turning her head. She grasped his shoulder reassuringly when he slid to the ground beside her. With her free hand, she took the few coins St. Clair had given her from her pocket and pushed them into the bemused Frenchman’s hand. “For the duck, monsieur, which now belongs to me.” She felt the boy’s start at this and squeezed his arm in warning. “That being the case and seeing I want the duck alive, I shall bid you good day.” Sweeping the lad before her, she hurried across the courtyard, oblivious to the dirt clinging to her skirts. A haughty stare carried them through the steamy kitchen, duck and all, with only a few startled servants even aware of their passage. They were halfway up the stairs when Angel started to giggle. “Mam’selle?” the boy whispered with a wary expression in his eyes. Angel pressed her fingers to her mouth. “Don’t worry, I am not mad,” she wheezed as she towed him along to her room. Her emotions fueled by reaction and nerves, she collapsed on the bed and laughed until her sides ached. In wonderment, the boy watched wide‐eyed, standing very still just inside the door. A rather handsome young man, Angel decided when she had caught her breath and dried her eyes. A shock of unruly black hair fell across the wide smooth forehead, accenting the smoky gray eyes that watched her intently. “You will cut a wide swath through the ladies in a few years, young man,” she said in English. He met her friendly expression with a blank look. “Pardon, Mam’selle?” Angel grinned at him and gestured toward a nearby chair. “Not very trusting, are you, mon ami? No doubt you have your reasons. Well enough. I will leave you to make up your own mind about me, then, in your own time.” She rose and guided him to the chair. “Perhaps it will help if I tell you I know you are English.” She gave him a sympathetic smile, hoping he would feel able to confide in her. He regarded her gravely, the wary, frightened look on his face making her heart ache. No child should look so. She waited for his answer, seeing instinct war with reality in his expressive eyes. It appeared he had learned some hard lessons in his short life, but after a long pause, the thin shoulders relaxed. “How did you know?” Angel chuckled. “You called that crazy chef a leather‐headed sapskull.” “Oh.” Almost, a smile touched his lips. “Oh, indeed.” Angel sat back upon the bed, drew her knees to her chest and clasped her arms around them. “It might be well to learn to swear in French. I daresay Mr. Williams could teach you. Oh, he is my—husband,” she explained, in answer to the question in his eyes. “It means you will have two friends to help you,” she assured him, seeing him tense. “You have the look of someone who could use some friends.”
He stroked the now sleeping duck, head bent. Angel hadn’t needed the shabby worn jacket a size too small to realize all was not well. She believed he wanted to trust her and searched her mind for another way to reach him. “Ah bien. I see we have done this all topsy‐turvy. We have had no introductions.” She rose and held out her hand. “I am Angel, Angel Williams.” He took her outstretched hand, trying to rise while holding the duck with the other. “Adam, ma’am, Adam Wolfe.” “No, do not disturb your pet, Adam Wolfe. I think it best he stays quiet.” She rested her hand briefly on his shoulder. “Will you tell me your story, Adam? Why are you here in France?” She perched once more on the edge of the bed. He shrugged and stared down at the floor. “I am waiting for my father. He should be returning any day now. He will come, you know.” The boy straightened and looked earnestly at her. “They don’t believe it, but I know he would never forget me.” “They?” “Monsieur Noailles and the rest of them here,” he explained with a look of distain that made Angel hide a smile. “They keep telling me he’s dead and never going to come, but it’s not true, Mrs. Williams.” His eyes begged her to believe him. “I would know if he was dead,” he told her stoutly, then added in a whisper, “wouldn’t I?” Angel would not think of denying that appeal. “Of course you would,” she replied promptly, with perhaps more compassion than sense. “I daresay your Papa has only been delayed. How long have you been waiting?” Adam swallowed hard before he answered. “Three months.” Even Angel’s optimism faded somewhat at hearing this. No wonder they had supposed him abandoned, or worse. She propped a pillow against the bedpost and leaned back. “Perhaps it would be best to start at the beginning, d’accord?” Unexpectedly he grinned at her. “D’accord.” He took a breath and the words tumbled out. “I am only half English. My father is American, but we lived in England until a few years ago, with my grandparents. Then since my father was going to be sailing on American ships, my mother and I went to live in Baltimore so we could see him more often. It was not to be forever, you understand. We were always meant to go back to England,” he assured her. “Did you not like America, Adam?” He shrugged. “It was well enough, I suppose. There were horses.” He said this in such a way as to leave no doubt as to his feelings for the four‐legged beasts. “But then Mother became ill, and she died of the fever.” His words slowed and a look of sorrow appeared in his eyes. “After that, Father decided to return to England, so I could live with my grandparents when he was at sea. But there was a bad storm, and the ship was blown off course and we had to put into port for repairs, and things.” His voice trailed off and he shrugged again. Angel nodded in understanding, though she didn’t think Adam’s knowledge of ‘repairs and things’ much greater than her own. It did not appear young Adam would be following in his father’s footsteps.
“I see. You put in to Rouen for repairs. This must be a lengthy process, for you to have remained here so long. Perhaps your Papa went to England to tell your family of the problem? You do have family there still, you said,” Angel asked, although she believed it as unlikely as Adam apparently did, for his answer came quickly. “My grandparents and aunt and uncle, but I’m very sure my father would not have gone there without me.” His voice was tight with misery. “I don’t know where he went. He had a message, and said he had to go away for a few days. But I waited and waited, Mrs. Williams, and the money he left is gone and I don’t know where to look for him. The man who owns this place let me stay in the stable loft, which I don’t mind because I like helping out with the horses, you understand. But I can’t stay here much longer and I don’t know what to do.” His eyes were suspiciously bright and Angel jumped up. She bustled about the room with a swirl of her skirts to hide her own tear‐filled eyes, knowing he wouldn’t welcome her sympathy. “Pah, money,” she declared with an airy wave of her hands. “That is the easiest problem to resolve, for we have a goodly sum laid by.” Angel pretended great interest in the contents of her trunk to give him a few minutes to regain his composure, before she turned to face him. “Finding your Papa will not be so simple a thing, but Mr. Williams will know how to go about it, I’m sure,” Angel continued. She wished she could give him a hug, but settled for letting one hand rest on his shoulder. This time, he was able to summon a real smile in answer to hers. “Whatever is decided, you are among friends now, Adam. We shall contrive, I promise you.” A long look passed between them, one that conveyed a message of mutual dependability and trust, and Adam’s slim body relaxed. “Oui, Madame,” he said with a sudden, cheeky grin that made Angel all the more determined to see him out of his predicament. “Good. We shall do very well then.” “Quack. Quack.” The duck’s loud squawk seemed to accent her words and she chuckled. “Your friend is in agreement, I see, and also is telling us we have been neglecting him.” She stroked the soft, graceful, curved neck of the bird in Adam’s arms. “A handsome specimen, indeed, is Monsieur Canard. What is his name, Adam?” Adam shot her a shy look, a spark of mischief lighting his eyes. “Hickory.” Angel’s forehead winkled in puzzlement. “Hickory?” “Yes, ma’am. For Hickory, Dickory Dock.” He beamed at her, looking very pleased with his joke. For a moment the reference escaped her. Then understanding dawned and she broke into laughter. “Oh, how clever of you,” she gurgled, very much entertained by this whimsy. *** It was this merry scene that St. Clair saw when he walked into the room. “Is this a private joke?” he drawled, oddly put out of humor to find Angel in such close proximity to any male, even one as young as this one.
“Mr. Williams, you have been gone forever.” Angel whirled to face him, a smile lighting her face. Her blue eyes held an unmistakable welcome, and he felt his annoyance ease as he reached for her outstretched hands. “Angel.” There was a teasing affection in the softly spoken word and relief bloomed in her eyes. St. Clair watched the play of emotions across her expressive face with growing amusement. “Why do I have the feeling I am about to hear something that will make me wish for blissful ignorance?” he asked with a quizzical smile, but made no objection when she urged him forward. “Come, Adam Wolfe. Now you shall meet mon mari and he will decide how best to help you.” Angel swiftly made the introductions, not omitting Hickory, who Adam deposited on the floor while he made his bow. Angel launched into a rapid‐fire explanation of Adam’s presence in their room, speaking in such a mixture of French and English that several times the Earl blinked in surprise, until further enlightenment arrived in the next somewhat mangled sentence. Adam looked quite dazed by this enthusiastic outburst, and St. Clair grinned in sympathy at the bewildered look on the boy’s face when she finished with a determined “we must help.” “My sentiments exactly, Wolfe. But sensibility and beauty are too much to expect of any female,” the Earl said with a shrug, his expression inviting the lad to share in his appreciation of his lady. Adam grinned, clearly flattered to be included in the world of men, and he straightened proudly. “You wretch,” Angel remonstrated with mock indignation. “This is no time for your jests. I am always sensible.” “Of course you are, my love,” he returned, grinning. Unable to resist the pouting lips, he gave her a swift kiss. “Mr. Williams!” Angel gasped at this unexpected behavior, her cheeks scarlet with embarrassment. He smiled to see it, tempted to repeat his actions, and much more thoroughly. “What a delightful colour you are.” He lifted her hand to place a soft kiss on her palm. Her flush deepened and he laughed as he released her. He turned his attention to Adam. The intelligent look in the lad’s eyes and the calm manner under his scrutiny spoke of confidence and self‐control. Relieved to see it, for St. Clair saw endless difficulties that might arise from this addition to their party and no more than Angel would he consider leaving the boy behind, knowing as he now did the resumption of war was eminent. “Sit, please, we have much to discuss. We are leaving tomorrow, Adam, which allows only today for me to make inquiries about your father,” the Earl said, ignoring Angel’s start of surprise at this change of plans. “Is your father known to Monsieur Noailles?” “Yes, a little, I think. My father has stayed here before but I don’t think they are friends,” Adam answered in a voice full of doubt.
“Good enough. I will speak to him now, while you and Angel eat. The meal I’ve ordered will be brought up soon. I will also settle up with him for your reckoning.” He shook his head when Adam started to protest. “Not to do so would lead to more attention. I will put it about I am acquainted with your father and he asked that I collect you here. While I’m following any leads Noailles may be able to give me, Ned will take you both to purchase some clothes. Something sturdy the servant of a prosperous merchant would wear.” St. Clair looked frankly at Adam. “You do understand that unless your father turns up tonight you will leave here with us tomorrow.” Adam swallowed hard, obviously torn between a fervent desire to leave this inn, and the fear his father would return and not find him here. “I understand,” he said after a short pause and the Earl nodded his approval. “We will leave word with Noailles that you have gone to your family in England. It would be thought very surprising that you stay, in any case, Adam. Very soon none of our countrymen will be welcome here.” He spoke in a firm voice that discouraged any further discussion and offered no explanation of his last words. Seeming to sense he had little choice in the matter, Adam made no protest. “Yes, sir. I would like to be home. I think my grandparents must be very worried not to have heard from us by now.” There was an anxious little frown between his eyes. Angel and the Earl exchanged a look over his head. “How old are you, Adam?” St. Clair asked. “I have eleven years, sir.” St. Clair swore under his breath. Since he couldn’t believe any decent man would abandon his son, and Adam appeared to share a deep affection with his father, he was not very optimistic about locating the man. Hiding his pessimism under a brusque manner, he began issuing orders. “We will need a bag of some sort, Angel, to hold Adam’s clothes and other possessions, and a covered basket for Hickory.” He glanced at Adam. “I don’t suppose you would consent to leaving the duck behind?” St. Clair smiled wryly at the boy’s quick shake of his head. “I thought not.” St. Clair handed Angel a purse filled with coin. “When you return, you can bring your belongings here, Adam, but you will need to sleep in the stable loft again tonight.” He touched a finger to Angel’s lips to forestall the protest he saw forthcoming. “I know you wish otherwise, but people would think it very odd for a recently married couple to bring a young boy into their room.” “Ah, bien, of course you are right,” Angel agreed with a frown. “We will do just as you say. Thank you, Mr. Williams.” Her grateful smile was such he felt ten feet tall. “You are most welcome, Mrs. Williams,” he said with a grin and a flick of his finger on her cheek. “Eat your meal. I’ll be back soon. St. Clair’s smile faded once the door closed behind him, though after some reflection, he came to the conclusion that perhaps this addition to his party might be to their advantage. It
would provide Angel with some semblance of chaperonage, something he viewed with favor, given his difficulty in keeping his hands off her. The news he had from Noailles was worrisome. There were rumors a shipment of coin was en route to France in support of the Royalists, and how that had slipped out, he would very much like to know. It appeared Napoleon’s agents had no more information than that as yet, but having the French on alert and his contact warier than a fox with the hounds on his tail, was an unexpected added danger. Already it had necessitated a change in plans. No longer could they afford a leisurely journey to their destination. Instead, they would leave tomorrow and make directly for Amiens. St. Clair emerged from the taproom sometime later with a sharp edge to his temper. Trying to appear unconcerned in front of Angel and Adam, he loaded them into the coach along with one of the hôtel’s maidservants, and bid them to be about their shopping. The worried look on Angel’s face was fuel for his anger. He should never have allowed her to set foot off the ship. He’d known the dangers in this crazy escapade and had no business involving this trusting girl. He was a fool, a lack‐wit, and knowing he had thrust aside his scruples and good judgment as much because he had wanted her with him, as he had needed a temporary wife, made it worse. Hell, Strathmere would have his head for washing if anything happened to her and he would damn well deserve it. The one thing to lighten this gloomy mood through that long, weary afternoon, as he wandered from a wine shop—where he ordered several cases of a very tolerable claret—to a booksellers, where a fine print of the harbor caught his eye, and thence to a succession of shops, and inns for refreshment, was the knowledge his appearance in some of the more unsavory places in the old city could be put down to his legitimate inquiries concerning Kenneth Wolfe. In fact, St. Clair decided, when he returned some hours later, Wolfe may well turn out to be a blessing in disguise. Now he had established that Adam’s father had left Rouen for parts unknown, what would be more logical than that they make inquiries as they traveled? Cheered by this, and by the news he received from Ned that the coach would be the lighter by more than a few pounds before morning, he was able to join into the camaraderie amongst his little party as they dined, again in their room. Angel and Adam were in high spirits after the successful excursion, already on the best of terms, and proud to show off their purchases, but when Adam was sent off to bed, Angel sobered. “Is aught amiss?” she asked in a quiet voice. “I know you had intended to stay here longer. Is it Adam? Has he endangered your mission? Perhaps I could….” She broke off in mid‐ sentence. “Could what, my sweet? Leave the lad behind? Not likely, I think.” Her stricken expression confirmed his estimation that she would never abandon the boy. Nor would he, for that matter, as he was quick to assure her. “Don’t think it. Adam will do us no harm and his presence may help.” He chuckled. “Now that duck is another matter.” She smiled, as he had intended she should, at this reference to Hickory’s potential for causing trouble.
“Perhaps,” she conceded. He led her to a chair before he settled on the bed. “Perhaps, nothing. That duck has trouble written all over it.” Angel laughed at the skeptical look on his face, but she refused to be diverted. “I wish you would not try to pretend all is well. I think it cannot be wise to keep me uninformed. What if I should say or do something wrong out of ignorance?” Her voice grew wistful. “Please let me help. I want to be part of this adventure and not just by pretending to be your wife.” He saw the knuckles of her tightly clasped hands whiten, and he started forward. But the words came tumbling out, and he paused, sensing how important this was to her. “I feel so stupid at times. I hear snatches of conversation, of people and things I feel I should know, and I don’t. There is no understanding.” She rose and turned her back to him. “You, and now Adam, are the only ones who are real to me.” Her voice wavered and he went to her. “My poor Angel. Do you know, I had almost forgotten about your memory?” Hands on her shoulders, he shifted her around to face him, raised her bent head with one hand, and brushed away the moisture on her cheeks with the other. “Confound it, Angel,” he swore under his breath and gathered her into his arms. He pressed her head against his chest, smiling a little as the slow warmth of her tears seeped through his shirt. What a needle‐wit he had been not to realize how strange everything must seem to her. Once recovered from her injuries she had taken so readily to this adventure, he tended to forget just how vulnerable she was. “Don’t cry, little one. You’ve been doing wonderfully well. Your memory will come back. Give it time.” Valiantly overcoming the impulse to keep her nestled in his arms, St. Clair placed his handkerchief in her hand and stepped back a pace. “Feeling better?” he asked, with a cheeky grin that brought a wobbly smile to her lips. “I feel foolish,” she admitted, avoiding his eyes. “Stuff and nonsense. You are the most level‐headed female I’ve ever known.” “Truly, Devlin?” Her expression brightened at this positive statement and he touched one finger to her lips. “Truly. Now, since you seem hell‐bent on helping me, turn‐about is only fair. Make ready for bed.” He moved toward the door. “When I return, we will talk.” Talk they did, into the wee hours of the morning while stretched out on the bed, the thick quilts between them. Of the king, and Castlereagh, Pitt and Napoleon; of the ton and St. Clair’s friends; Vauxhall and Drury Lane; horses and hunting. The Earl painted a word picture of his life, until she felt his mother, sister, and uncle were known to her. They spoke of the war, and the peace, and the war he knew was coming. “Thank you, Devlin,” Angel whispered sleepily when the conversation drifted to an end. “That was a wonderful gift. Bon nuit.” “Bon nuit.” St. Clair leaned over to blow out the guttering candle and tuck the blankets more firmly around her before settling himself. He had enjoyed it as well, he realized with surprise. Gad, he had never talked so much in his life, or revealed so much of himself to anyone. Angel had a quick, intuitive understanding that made telling her things so enjoyable
he could have no regrets. He fell asleep smiling, the last thought in his head the disbelief on his friends’ faces if he were to tell them he had spent hours in a woman’s bed— talking.
Chapter Nine Any pleasant memory of the previous evening faded instantly after St. Clair’s early morning conversation with Monsieur Noailles, and if he had not already harried his companions into a hurried meal of coffee and brioche and sent them out to the coach, he would have been even more disquieted. “A safe journey to you, Monsieur. It is always enjoyable to arrive home after a time away, n’est‐ce pas?” St. Clair nodded his agreement, warned by something in the landlord’s stolid expression that this bland statement held more meaning than it would appear. “The young man will no doubt thrive on friendlier soil as well, as one would expect,” Noailles went on. “Everything to its own place, I always say. So much healthier that way.” “A wise philosophy.” The Earl looked over the tab, took some coins from his purse and casually scanned the room. The few men present appeared to have interest in naught but the meals before them. “Thank you, Monsieur, for your excellent hospitality.” St. Clair raised his voice. “If ever I venture abroad again, I will make it a point to stop at your inn.” Momentarily, his wide shoulders shielded Noailles from the view of the other customers; the Frenchman was quick to respond. “Leave France quickly, Monsieur. There is reason for speed,” he mouthed before saying loudly, “A good journey to you, sir.” St. Clair nodded and walked across the room and out into the courtyard. The baggage was being loaded into the coach and Angel and Adam stood waiting, an ample bag of provisions at their feet. That pesky fowl as well, St. Clair noted, frowning at the wicker basket clutched in Adam’s arms. He supposed there was no help for it. Lips tight with annoyance, he helped his little party into the coach and climbed in after them. “Get going, Ned.” Ned grunted his acknowledgement, swung up beside the hired groom to take the reins, and started the horses off at a trot. St. Clair settled back in his corner, his grim countenance a warning to the other passengers that conversation was unwelcome. He half listened to Adam telling Angel of his life in America, while he brooded over Noailles’ words and what effect the resumption of war would have on his mission. He had to try for speed at this point, he decided. They must spend at least one night in Amiens to make contact with la Comtesse and deliver the remainder of the gold coin but after that, they would make for the coast as soon as possible. He could only pray Carlisle would be at the rendezvous point ahead of the scheduled time. With at least a tentative plan in mind, and somewhat restored by a tankard of ale when they stopped in mid‐morning to change the horses and have a brief walk around, St. Clair felt civil enough to produce a lapboard and invite them to play a game of cards when they resumed their journey. Young Wolfe’s manners were just as they should be, St. Clair observed with approval, as he drew more specific information from the boy with a few pertinent questions. He was not surprised to learn that Adam’s grandfather was a respected solicitor in the port of
Southampton. A well brought up lad who would no doubt receive a warm welcome from his English family. If ever they got him there, St. Clair thought grimly. He leaned forward to stare out at the passing countryside. “Are you looking for anything in particular, Mr. Williams?” Angel asked in a wistful voice. Guessing at the reason for this soft inquiry, St. Clair glanced over at her. “I intended to discover a good place to stop this rackety vehicle so we can eat and stroll about a bit,” he told them with a sly smile, “but I believe we could go on a few more miles if you wish.” “Oh, no!” Angel and Adam cried out at the same time, and he grinned. “Wretched man. You know very well we are positively aching to get out,” Angel huffed, but a pleased smile lit her face. “Are you, Mrs.Williams?” he teased, feigning a bland look. Seeing a slim line of trees ahead, he reached up to bang on the side of the coach before tweaking one of the curls clinging to her neck, for it was warm and close in the coach. “Then indeed we will stop. Right now, in fact.” He bounded out the instant the vehicle came to a complete halt, snatched Angel from the steps as she stepped down and swung her to the ground, her skirts flying. “Devlin!” she squealed, clinging to him. Her delighted laughter encouraged him to swing her around once more before setting her down. “Come, I’m devilish sharp‐set, and so is Adam, I don’t doubt,” he said, his look inviting the boy to join them. “We menfolk don’t have the dainty appetites of you ladies.” Angel blushed at this impolite reference to her growling stomach and grabbed a blanket from the coach before she hurried towards the trees. She sent him a haughty look over her shoulder and he laughed, making her walk all the faster. Grinning, St. Clair handed Adam the basket containing a loudly protesting Hickory before turning to help Ned and Anton unhitch the horses. “Tether them near those trees, Ned, after they have had a drink. If they get loose there, we will have the French peasantry out after us.” His gesture indicated the cultivated farmland on either side of the road. Ned nodded his agreement and the men led the horses towards the tiny stream running through the small woodland. “Come get something for you and Anton to eat when you’re done,” St. Clair called to the coachman as he walked away. Swinging the bag of provisions onto one broad shoulder, he followed the others into a pocket‐sized clearing where Angel had spread the blanket out on the ground. “Look, Devlin. Isn’t this perfect?” she cried, seeing him. “Perfect,” he answered absent‐mindedly, intent on the enticing vision dancing toward him. In concession to the heat, Angel had loosened the top buttons of her blouse, exposing the creamy length of her throat and her lustrous hair curled wildly around her animated face. “Lovely,” he drawled. He grasped her outstretched hands and smiled down at her. “But you didn’t even look,” she protested. “No?” he countered in a low voice, enjoying the colour that reddened her cheeks at his words. Caught under his kindling gaze, Angel stood motionless, and he put his fingers against the pulse beating visibly in her neck. Seeming oblivious to Adam’s fascinated attention, the
approaching Ned, and Hickory’s busy clucking, she leaned toward him. With tantalizing slowness, he bent his head, his lips covering her warm mouth while his hands crept up to cup her face. It was a long, thorough kiss, and she leaned limply against him when he released her. “Mr. Williams,” Angel gasped, recalled to their audience by a loud squawk from Hickory. Her face flaming, she whirled around and sank to her knees, pretending great interest in the bag at her feet. “Why, Mrs. Williams, are you that hungry?” St. Clair elevated his brows in mock surprise. “Then do please set out the food at once.” Openly laughing now, he knelt beside her, grasped her forearm and leaned over to place a quick kiss on her mouth. Angel gave him a reproachful look. “Horrid man,” she muttered under her breath as she set out the food. “Did you say something, my dear?” St. Clair interrupted the sotto‐voiced tirade as he settled down cross‐legged on the blanket. “Oui,” Angel snapped. She glanced at Adam, who stared wide‐eyed, and at Ned’s ill‐ concealed grin, and frowned. “You sir, have dreadful manners.” “No doubt you are right, sweetheart,” he agreed with a solemn expression. “If I promise to behave, will you feed me?” “Ah, tres bien,” she retorted, “though I hold little hope you will behave, sir.” With a sniff, she turned away and began to fill plates for him and Adam. St. Clair handed a plate to Ned, heaped with the bread, cheese and cold meats prepared for them by the inn’s chef. It was a merry meal, enlivened by St. Clair’s gentle teasing and Angel’s ready laughter. Adam said little, but his frequent smiles told their own story. When they had finished, St. Clair stretched out on the blanket, his head in Angel’s lap, while Adam wandered along the stream to watch Hickory splash in the shallow water and Ned went off with a plate of food for Anton. St. Clair drifted asleep, his late nights catching up to him. ~* * *~ Angel studied the sleeping man in her lap. He looked absurdly young. In repose, his face lost the disciplined, guarded look that made him seem older than his years. With his startling eyes veiled, there was a puzzling familiarity about him. Was it possible she had known him before? Not likely, she decided. While she couldn’t be certain, of course, she suspected she was not very well versed in the ways of the world. Her hand crept to his forehead, brushing back his hair with trembling fingers. He had become so dear to her in their short time together, a safe haven for all her fears. His strength and self‐confidence attracted her as much as the handsome face and beguiling smiles. She loved the way he teased her, his gentleness with Adam. Oh, he was bad tempered and impatient at times, but those moods were short lived and never without cause. She did not believe she held the same place in his affections, however many kisses he bestowed. How could it be thus? She was a nameless waif, as he had called her, whose presence was only necessary because of his mission here and now she had saddled him with a
boy and a duck. She sensed as well that he was far above her in station, however much she had the speech and manners of the upper class. Well, what would come would come and she could do nothing to change it. Vowing she would disappear from his life once they had returned to England, Angel laid her palm on his cheek. It would be like him to offer for her in some quixotic gesture he would later regret. Too, the shadowy memories of The House were becoming clearer, with faceless beings that were nonetheless familiar and dear to her. Her memory was returning, but nothing in her past could ever equal this precious interlude. Angel looked slowly around the shady glade. She wanted to imprint every blade of grass and leafy branch into her mind. Whatever happened, she had this lovely adventure to think back on. She sat unmoving for a long time, absorbing the bird songs and scents of the grass and trees, until the lengthening shadows and strengthening breeze intruded. Reluctantly she stirred. They should be on their way. She laid a hand on his shoulder. “Devlin? It is getting late.” Startled, he came awake in an instant and sat up in a rush. “What the devil? How could I have slept so long? We should have been on our way an hour ago. I have no wish to be benighted on an unfamiliar road.” “I am sorry,” Angel answered in a small voice, dismayed at having disappointed him. St. Clair rose and helped her to her feet. “Don’t look like that,” he half growled. “It is not your fault I overslept. I’m a bad‐tempered brute when I wake up, which you must know by now. It’s one of my many faults.” Relieved, Angel smiled. “Surely not so many faults, sir,” she dared to tease. “Lord, I have tons of them,” he said with a quick grin and casual shrug. He stepped away from her and bent over to gather the remains of their meal. Angel hurried to help him. “Please, let me do this. Perhaps you should call for Adam. I don’t see him anywhere.” She frowned anxiously as she gazed around. St. Clair swore. “A fine guardian I am, letting the lad wander off. And where the devil is Ned?” “Perhaps Adam has taken Hickory down along the stream.” “No need to worry yet. I’ll take a look while you gather up our things. Find Ned and have him carry everything to the coach.” He strode away without waiting for her agreement. Angel could hear him calling Adam while she feverishly tossed everything into the bag and stuffed the blanket in on top. She was trying to decide what to do, when Ned emerged from the trees. “Oh, Ned, please take this to the coach and see that the horses are ready.” Angel ignored the bewildered look on the man’s face and turned to run after St. Clair, her skirts clenched in one hand. She followed him along the bank of the stream that led to a slight rise of land overlooking the sizable farmhouse sitting squarely in the center of the broad fields. St. Clair was a surprising distance ahead, stepping smoothly across the rows of plants without a break in his long stride, headed toward the lane that ran alongside the fields and on to the front of the house, where a group of people milled around shouting. Not quite as nimbly as St. Clair, Angel ran across the field behind him, too breathless to call out that she was coming. He had no notion she followed behind him, she realized, amusement vying with
annoyance. Bien. Did he think she would stay meekly behind? Grandpère always said she could run as fast as the wind—and was not one to stay out of any situation. “Grandpère!” Angel’s headlong dash halted abruptly. Her sweet, darling grandfather. How could she have forgotten him for a moment? Elation filled her. She did have a family, one who cared about her. Oh, he would be frantic with worry, she realized, appalled to think her headstrong behavior had caused him to suffer. Her memories interrupted by the sound of voices, she started to run again. She had a sinking feeling the clamor ahead involved that wretched duck. Angel covered the last distance in a rush, very much aware that her hair, undone and tumbling down her back, and her hot face presented an altogether unbecoming appearance. St. Clair’s amused look when he glanced over at her, without slackening his pace in the least, left little doubt in her mind he fully agreed. “Wretch,” she hissed between breaths. St. Clair’s maddening grin was the only response but she was amply rewarded by the stunned look on his face when they reached the farmyard and surveyed the astonishing scene before them. Angel was sure her face looked much the same, for no one, absolutely no one, would ever believe that one little, well, not so very little, duck could be the cause of all this mayhem. Hickory’s sharp beak held one end of a pink ribbon, most unfortunately attached to the dress clutched by a screeching maid, while Adam jumped around in an attempt to block the wildly swinging broom wielded by a very plump, red‐faced woman. What had to be the entire staff stood cheering on the antagonists, Angel noted, trying desperately not to laugh. The Earl felt no such restraint. Doubled up with laughter, he wheezed beside her. And so, for the second time that week, Angel found reason to exercise her lungs. “Arrêt!” It really was amazing, Angel decided with satisfaction, the effect of a good, hearty shout. Startled into silence, the participants froze in place, the only sound a soft plop as a triumphant Hickory landed on his tail feathers with a piece of ribbon in his beak. Madame Broom‐waver was the first to recover, at once turning her ire on the new intruders. “Marauders, raiders! Is nothing private these days?” she screamed, advancing towards Angel with the broom in the air. “Go away! You are not wanted here. You as well.” She whirled to confront the dumbfounded maid. “I knew it would be a mistake to take l’anglais into my home. You have been nothing but trouble. Vite. Vite!” She waved her broom at the young woman. “Madame, s'il vous plaît,” Angel attempted, a wary eye on the broom. “I do not please to do anything but have these intruders removed from my sight. At once, do you hear, at once.” The woman snatched up the abandoned, disheveled gown and pressed it to her ample bosom. “Look, it is ruined, my beautiful dress. François, Pierre. Make them go away.” Grinning ear to ear, the burly men seemed all too ready to comply. Angel edged closer to Adam, prepared to defend him. Heavens above, what a fuss over a gown. She sent the grinning St. Clair a reproachful look, and he gave her a knowing smile before stepping forward to sweep the astounded matron a courtly bow worthy of the regent himself.
“My dear lady, what a distressing experience for you. It is a sad thing when a lady of such sensitivity suffers these indignities.” The smoothly spoken words had an instant response. To Angel’s amazement, Madame lowered the broom, bridling under the admiring gaze of the Earl. The apple red cheeks paled to a more normal hue as he kissed her hand and the pouty, rosebud mouth curled in a smile. “La, monsieur, your timely rescue is most welcome. How fortunate to have someone of sensibility intervene,” she declared, dabbing affectedly at her eyes with the pink confection still in her hand. “I am positively overcome with it all, beset as I am.” “Dear, brave, lady.” St. Clair pressed her fingers in sympathy, earning a disgusted glare from Angel, who was taking advantage of the distraction to reach Adam’s side. A touch on his shoulder and a gesture towards the lane sent the lad on his way, silent as one of those Indians he had mentioned, with Hickory muffled under his coat. Swallowing a sigh, Angel returned her attention to the others. Most of the staff had quite sensibly retreated and who could blame them with such a mistress? Only the maid stood still rooted in place, her face set and white, and such an imploring look in her eyes that Angel moved toward her. “How can I help you?” she whispered, drawing the girl farther away from her mistress. To Angel’s dismay, the maid’s face crumpled and her lips trembled. “I’m sorry, miss. There is nothing you can do. I thought you were English, you see, for the boy spoke it.” She spoke in such a low voice, and with such heavily accented French, it took Angel a minute to understand. “You are l’anglais. However did you end up in this place? No, don’t tell me now.” Angel hastily forestalled the maid’s explanation, which was sure to be lengthy. “Yes, we are English. Have you a problem we can resolve for you?” “I want to go home.” The words rushed out in a wail and Angel looked around uneasily, but the girl’s mistress was still engaged with St. Clair. “You are being kept here against your will?” Angel questioned with some amazement. “No, ma’am,” the young woman admitted. “But I’ve not enough money saved for the passage home, and even if I did, I’d be afraid to travel to the port alone.” For a brief moment Angel hesitated. What on earth would St. Clair say should she invite yet another person into his care? But it was beyond her to ignore the beseeching look in the maid’s tear‐filled eyes. “You wish to come with us?” “Oh, yes please. I’d be ever so grateful.” The woe‐be‐gone expression on the young woman’s face was lightened by a tremulous smile that tugged at Angel’s heart and she sighed. St. Clair would not be happy, but Angel did not believe the Earl any more able to deny this heart‐felt plea than she was. “Will Madame be likely to object?” “Oh, no, miss. She will be glad to get rid of me. She never liked me though I’ve done my best to please her.” “I am sure that dreadful woman dislikes everyone. Of course you shall leave with us.” Aware of the icy glare Devlin was giving her, Angel hurried on. “Please, what is your name? “Paula Peters, miss.” “Pretty,” Angel replied with a smile. “Hurry now and get your things, for we must be off.”
Paula shook her head. “Madame would kick up a fuss for sure, miss, if I was to go to the house. It’s just bits and pieces anyway.” “Nonsense, of course you must have your possessions. Go now, I will take care of Madame.” She gave the maid a gentle push towards the farmhouse. Angel walked over to join the Earl, who was looking quite harried by now, and interrupted the Frenchwoman in full spate. “My dear Madame, you have been quite taken in by an adventuress, I fear. We do understand why you would not want her in your home, for it may be that the authorities in England are looking for her.” She sent St. Clair a warning glance and went on. “Do you remember, sir, we heard they were looking for a thief when we left the ship? I am certain the description matched that maid, but I never expected to encounter her. How fortunate that we arrived in time to save you any loss. Isn’t that so, sir?” “So it seems,” he agreed with a look that plainly suggested she had suddenly lost her mind. “Never say so!” the woman screeched. “I have harbored a thief in my home. I knew there was something wrong with that girl. I knew it, and now she has gone into my house to steal!” She turned as if to go after the maid and Angel hastened to reassure her. “No, no, have no fear of that, Madame. I have not let on that I suspect her. She thinks to travel with us and then slip away, I am certain. She will not, for monsieur will guard her closely.” “You may be sure of it, Madame,” St. Clair agreed. “Come, you must rest after all this excitement, which surely cannot be healthy for one of your great sensibility. Bon chance, dear lady. I will see to everything.” Angel felt his strong fingers clamp on her arm and he began propelling her along the lane. The maid ran to meet them, a cloth bag clutched in her arms, and most wonderfully, the coach was in sight and coming toward them. The stunned expressions of Madame and her servants were almost her undoing, however. Lord, they must think them bedlamites at the very least. Biting her lip, Angel stole a glance at St. Clair as he half dragged her along. He did not appear to see the humor in the situation. Feeling silence might be wise, she trotted along with him, but her chest was tight with restrained laughter. She pressed her hand against her mouth to hide her quivering lips. Her thanks to Ned for coming to their aid was almost a gasp and it took no more than the Earl’s “good Gad, Angel,” to break her control. Succumbing to her mirth, she laughed until tears ran down her cheeks, while Adam and Paula watched her with wide‐eyed astonishment. “You have a talent for the dramatic, Mrs. Williams.” St. Clair eyed her as if she was some exotic creature he’d never seen before, a wary look in his eyes. He gestured to Adam and Miss Peters to get in the coach and taking Angel’s arm again, led her away from the others. “I am sorry,” Angel choked out, trying to control her laughter, “but surely you were as entertained as I at that ridiculous farce,” she challenged.
“Farce isn’t the word for it,” he growled. “Just what are you about, Angel? The last thing we need is someone else coming into this business.” He was seriously annoyed, Angel judged from the stern expression on his face. She looked earnestly at him and placed a hand on his arm. “I couldn’t leave the girl there, Devlin, and don’t believe you would either. She was virtually a prisoner! She had no money to return to England and they kept her very isolated. I know it’s another burden on you, but I’m certain she will not be any trouble.” “It’s hardly a burden, but have you thought she may be in more danger with us than she was on that farm? This isn’t a pleasure jaunt!” Angel sighed and stepped closer. “I do know that, and I should have asked you first, but really there was no opportunity.” She leaned forward and smiled up at him. “Think of as an advantage,” she coaxed. “It is not out of the ordinary for me to travel with a maid and she can look after Adam when necessary.” A look of wry resignation replaced the irritation on his face. “A good point,” he conceded, “but no more, Angel. You can’t keep on rescuing every stray in France.” He was no longer angry, Angel decided, and felt her anxiety subside. “I promise to be very good. Besides, it’s unlikely such an odd circumstance would arise again.” Just thinking of the mad scene set the laughter bubbling in her throat, and she grinned up at him. “It was beyond bizarre, and quite the funniest thing imaginable,” she told him as they walked back to the coach. “It may have been amusing,” he conceded. “Amusing? You were certainly laughing hard enough at the time.” “Very well, it was funny. Very funny,” he grumbled as he helped her up the steps, but he was smiling, and Adam and Miss Peters exchanged a look of relief. “You are not angry?” Adam asked anxiously, as if he could scarcely believe it. “You won’t leave Hickory behind?” “Of course not.” Angel leaned over to give him a hug. “It was a wonderful adventure. I daresay we should be positively thankful to Hickory for starting the whole thing. Why, Miss Peters should never have been rescued without him.” Adam looked doubtful at this airy declaration. “And you sir?” his boyish voice squeaked out. St. Clair tousled the youngster’s hair with affection. “Miss Angel is right, lad. There is no harm done. Although ‘thankful’ isn’t quite the word I would have chosen, it was an interesting experience, to say the least.” He lounged back, folded his arms across his chest and looked slowly around at each member of their little party. “Now, suppose one of you explain to me why Miss Peters needed rescuing and why we couldn’t simply walk away from that madhouse instead of indulging in the most scatterbrained playacting I’ve ever seen.” “I was playacting? You were doing very well at it from what I could see. ‘Dear, brave lady’,” Angel mimicked with a merry smile. “Playacting,” he insisted.
Angel wrinkled her nose at him and launched into an explanation. “Madame would not have allowed us to take Paula away if she hadn’t thought her a thief.” “Oh, it’s true, sir,” Paula broke in. “Madame would never have let me go, as tight with a sou as she is. Where else could she get someone to work so hard and for almost nothing?” Paula held up two fingers pinched together and nodded vigorously. “But there is much I don’t understand.” Angel tilted her head in question. “How did you come to be there? I mean no insult, but you speak French very poorly and do not seem at all suited to such a position.” “There’s no need to spare my feelings, madam. I scarcely speak it at all, and that’s the plain truth. Nor wish to. Fool that I am, I wanted to see a bit of the world, and when squire’s wife said I could come to France with them, being as I’d been one of the upstairs maids and she so satisfied with my work, I was that glad to do it. It was to be no more than a few months, you see, and a bit extra for my mum to help keep her while I was gone.” The story tumbled out, how the squire’s wife decided once in France nothing would do but that she have a French maid, and Paula’s services no longer needed. “She did find me another position, and me thinking it was kindly,” Paula said in a mournful tone. “Not knowing then that Madame would leave Paris almost right away and go off to that farm. She said we would go back to Paris in a few weeks, and she would help me find a passage home, but it’s been a month or more and no sign of her leaving,” Paula finished up, her face pink with indignation. “Why, how terrible for you.” Angel reached over and took the maid’s hand in hers. “You are well out of it, I’m sure, and we will see you back on English soil in no time at all.” St. Clair gave the young woman a reassuring smile in response to the pleading expression on Angel’s face. “If a week or so constitutes no time.” “Oh, thank you, sir. I won’t be any trouble at all, I promise. And I will repay you someday, see if I don’t.” St. Clair shook off the offer with a wave of his hand. “You can repay us by looking after Mrs. Williams and giving Adam a hand. Now, as we have settled that to everyone’s satisfaction, I suggest that further introductions might well be in order. That is, if you would care to know with whom you are traveling?” “Oh, yes sir,” Paula replied, making an attempt to curtsey that almost tumbled her into Angel’s lap. “That is not at all necessary,” Angel told her with a chuckle as she disentangled herself. “However, introductions most certainly are. In all the excitement I forgot you have no idea who has carried you away.” The remainder of the journey was whiled away in conversation, with Adam’s story to be told and a little of the Williams’ tale related, and if Miss Peters actually learned very little of her benefactors’ lives, why, she never realized it until much later, so easy did they become with each other, in the manner of many a traveler.
Chapter Ten They stopped for the night at a small inn. Adam went off to the stables with Ned and Anton to see to the horses, while Paula proved her worth by swiftly unpacking what they needed for the night. The Earl went about the business of ordering a meal and a bath for Angel. “Tell Adam there is some grain in this sack for Hickory. He can take it and that blasted bird to the stable for the night. He will need to sleep out there with Ned in any case,” St. Clair told her as he laid the bag beside the open basket where Hickory sat preening himself. “There is no room available for them,” he added, seeing a protest begin to form on Angel’s lips. “This is not a spacious accommodation, and in fact, Miss Peters will be sharing a room with the chambermaid. It was all I could do to get even this…this cubby hole.” He looked around the small room with its single bed, and resigned himself to an uncomfortable night on the floor. A somewhat wobbly table and chair were the only other pieces of furniture, but wood for a fire was ready in the fireplace if needed and the room was scrupulously clean. It was not what he would have chosen but supposed it could be much worse. “I will see a meal is sent up and hurry that bath as well,” he said in a tone flat with annoyance, feeling just a bit put out that she did not appear to be particularly displeased with the room. His sour mood lightened at the look of delight on her face when she swung around to face him. “A bath? Oh, Devlin. It would be just the thing.” She threw her arms around him and planted a kiss on his cheek. “Wonderful, wonderful man.” She released him and began to spin around the room, almost running into Paula in the close quarters. Startled at her exuberance, he laughed and caught her hands, bringing her to a standstill. “If I had known the reward, I would have arranged for a bath sooner. Surely being a wonderful man entitles me to some rewards,” he said as he pulled her into his arms. He never even noticed Paula slip from the room as he took possession of Angel’s lips. He paused long enough to add, “perhaps three? Or four?” He kissed her again and again, until she leaned trembling against him. “Or five?” she whispered, returning his kiss with a fervor that both shocked and delighted him. His fingers drifted to her throat and stroked down to cup one breast. The throaty sound she made at his touch set his blood aflame. She was fire in his arms, and he wanted her with a fierce passion that took all his self‐discipline to master. It was madness. He’d vowed to protect her and now was making free of her innocence like the veriest of rogues. “Angel, Angel,” he breathed into her hair. “So sweet and tempting, so innocent. This is wrong, my dear.” He disengaged and placed her head against his chest, folding his arms around her. “It feels very right to me,” she answered in a wistful voice, but she stepped back when he released her. Her rosy cheeks and the lingering look of longing in her eyes was almost his undoing. “I’ll eat with Adam and Ned tonight. You and Paula can enjoy some privacy,” he said brusquely, appalled at his lack of control. “In fact, given the size of this room, I will sleep with
them as well. Paula will be more comfortable on a trundle in here anyway.” Ignoring the look of dismay on her face, he bent and picked up the basket and bag of feed. “But Devlin, there is no need….” He cut off her protest in mid‐sentence. “Your meal and bath will be here soon. I will see you in the morning. Good night, Angel.” He strode to the door without as much as a glance at her. One look at the hurt he was sure shone in her eyes, and he would give in, take her in his arms—into his bed. He didn’t know who she was, didn’t care two hoots, but that she was an untouched maiden he would bet his life. He hadn’t fallen to that level, thank God, and wouldn’t, no matter if it damn near killed him. Which it probably would! ~* * *~ Angel stood still for a long while, stunned by his rejection and sudden departure, uncertain what she had done to anger him. He had kissed her before, though perhaps not quite so ardently, and never had he caressed her person. Her fingers crept up to touch her breast. Perhaps he was disgusted by her wanton behavior. She’d wanted him to touch her. “Which is very bad of you, Juliette,” she muttered, sinking down on the bed. They were not married, nor likely to be, however much she wished for it. Oh, why did she have to remember who she was right this very day! Just as she had suspected, he was far above her in station and those fantasies of a life with him were simply that, fantasy. Even though her grandfather was a well‐respected general and knighted, she was not a match for an earl. Not to mention her French heritage! Even the fact she had traveled from France to England dressed in boy’s clothing would taint her in society’s eyes should it become known. Nonsense, Juliette. You are being overly hard on yourself and so Marie would tell you quite sternly if she could see this bout of self‐pity. Dearest Marie. What would she have done without her care and protection? For you were in no way able to think rationally that terrible night. She curled up on the bed and pressed her fingers to her eyes, shuddering at how easy it was to recall the sting and stench of the smoke. ~* * *~ France, 1793 The Chateau below was completely ablaze; smoke poured from the windows and the sound of shattering glass exploded in the pre‐dawn hours. Juliette wrapped her arms across her chest and followed Marie to a more sheltered spot amongst the jumble of boulders that studded the hillside. Unable to take her eyes from the inferno below, she knelt on the rough ground and tried desperately to believe Marie’s assurances that her father would come for them as he’d promised. Ribbons of light streaked across the sky when she finally struggled to her feet, stiff from the long hours of inactivity. Her eyes burned from the smoke filled wind and the tears she would not shed. He had not come, her dearest Papa, and she had a strange certainty that he would not. The fires were dying now and people ventured out of those buildings that had escaped the destruction. She was vaguely aware Marie had risen as well and that her nurse must be
suffering from a long night on the ground. She should be helping the older woman, yet she seemed unable to do anything but stare at the scene below. After a long silence, she felt a light touch on her hand, heard Marie’s voice, tight with worry. “Juliette? My dear, we cannot stay here much longer. Your father….” “My father is dead,” Juliette said with utter conviction. She turned to face her companion. “Child, you cannot be certain.” “I can. I do know it,” she whispered. “I knew it hours ago, but…I wanted to hope, just a little.” Juliette felt such a wave of grief she could barely contain it and her voice broke, her throat choked with anger and sorrow. “Why? Why did he go to the Chateau? Why help them and leave us alone?” “He felt it was his duty.” Marie enfolded Juliette in her arms and held her close. “The Entremonts had to be warned; la Comtesse persuaded to flee. It was a matter of honour. Child, he planned to return to us. Whatever happened last night, never doubt he loved you more than anything in this world.” Juliette straightened and pushed back her tangled hair. “Honour was important to Papa,” she admitted, and tried to draw some comfort from it. “But I wish I had been more important,” she said, half to herself, and turned away. “What are we to do?” Juliette asked after a time, never taking her eyes from the smoldering remains of the Chateau. There was no sign of life there, no one venturing close to see if anything could be saved. The townspeople had their own concerns today, could not know her father may lie buried under those blackened blocks of stone. She wanted to run down the hill, search and search until she found him, however foolish and futile an idea it was. She looked at Marie, really looked at her for the first time since they had fled their house just ahead of the rioting mob. There were streaks of soot on the woman’s lined cheeks and her clothes were as wrinkled and dirty as Juliette’s. It was unsettling to see the older woman other than composed and tidy. “Marie?” Juliette questioned, moving closer and taking her nurse’s hand when it seemed there would be no answer. She let out a pent‐up breath of relief when Marie wiped her eyes and cleared her throat. “We will first go to my brother’s house for a time, while he makes inquiries about your father.” “But….” “We must make very sure, child,” Marie said. “We will have no peace, otherwise. And then, then we will go to England, as your father had planned to do.” “To England, to my grandfather,” Juliette murmured. She laid her head on Marie’s shoulder and felt the familiar warmth of strong arms surround her. It would be well, to go to England. ~* * *~ It was well. Juliette turned over onto her back. She could smile at the memory now, although it was not so pleasant at the time. Dressed in the boy’s clothing Marie borrowed from her great‐nephew, she and Marie had made it safely to the coast and aboard a smuggler’s
boat going to England. Where her grandfather had welcomed them with open arms, so relieved to have them safe that even the sight of his only grandchild clothed in grubby breeches and jacket did not disturb him. Dearest Grandpère. Wrapped in his care and affection, Juliette had gradually recovered from her loss and thrived under his gentle, uncritical tutelage. The polite world St. Clair moved in would be far less forgiving. Grimacing, Angel rose and sighed heavily. Any future between them seemed impossible, so why not take this one chance to love him? He did want her, she felt sure of it. Surely she would not be ruined if no one learned of this interlude. Devlin would know, you goose, and would never forgive himself if he took advantage of the situation. She wished he were not quite so honourable. She, on the other hand, had no such inhibition, but would try, for his sake, to keep her distance. Of course, that was easier said than done. Why did he have to be so handsome and appealing? It was quite unreasonable of him. She couldn’t help but be amused at this absurd though. Aware that fatigue and worry helped to fuel this bout of self‐pity, she took a nightdress from her trunk and sat down to remove her shoes. Devlin did care about her. She would make every minute they had together count. Now, now she would be grateful for what she had; a bath, some dinner, and Paula to keep her company. How fortunate she was. ~* * *~ Angel felt much less so by the time their party reached the hôtel in Amiens late the following day. She had slept very little the previous evening and from his short temper thought St. Clair had also suffered through a restless night. The day’s travel had been a trial for them all, confined to the coach as they were. St. Clair had spent much of the time on the box with Ned and the groom, allowing only Adam to change places with him from time to time. They had all been eager to eat a light meal on their arrival and tumble into the large and comfortable beds. Now Angel slowly opened her eyes, relieved to find herself alone, and she stretched languorously before rolling over. She pushed herself up on the pillows to look around. Paula’s trundle was tucked away and not a sound could be heard from the adjoining room, shared by Adam and St. Clair. After one look at his set face, she had not dared to protest the sleeping arrangements he had decreed. The room was worthy of attention. Well proportioned, with shining oak wainscoting gracing the walls, almost the only colour was pink, in every shade imaginable, and some that were not. From the deep rose of the bed‐hangings to the delicate hue of the brocade‐covered chairs and the roses in the carpet, everything was pink. It even smelled pink, she decided, sniffing the rose scented air. A most unusual bedchamber, so much so she was amazed she could have been too tired to notice when they arrived. But then, this was not an ordinary hôtel, she remembered, lying down again. St. Clair had told her of the former Comtesse, who having survived the revolution with her head intact, although not her purse, had made her one remaining asset into a superior sort of inn. Not every aristo had died or fled. As I did, she mused, recalling more pleasant memories than had filled her mind last night.
The early days of her childhood, the scents and voices of her parents. Her father, swinging her around and calling her his whirling dervish and Maman tucking her into bed with a favorite story to soothe her to sleep. Even the trudging journey across France, when she was almost numb with grief and shock, was flavored by the kindness and generosity of Marie’s friends and relatives. By the time they reached the coast, the fog in her mind had lifted enough to allow some interest in the boat and the trip across the channel. She remembered how enchanted the voyage on the small boat had seemed, her grief eased for a time by the fresh, salt tinged wind blowing through her hair as she watched the sailors go about their work. There had been a young man among them, hauling on the sails with such a look of joy on his face she had stared openly at him, envious of his expertise and exhilaration. Was that why Devlin so attracted her, because he matched some childish image in her mind? No, she did not really believe that. If she were honest, she would admit to being in love with him. A deep sigh escaped her. She did not believe he had the same feeling for her, though he liked her well enough. Why should he love her, after all? She was not clever, or beautiful, or sophisticated. She was positive he’d had his pick of debutantes for years and she had been just beginning her first trip to London when all this began. Angel sat up abruptly. When what began? She realized she remembered nothing from the time she had stepped outside the door of the hostelry for a breath of fresh air. The accident with her coach, the old, ramshackle inn where they took shelter, the unfriendly innkeeper and Molly’s injured arm, those things she remembered. What of her men, John and Peter? Had anything happened to them? Grandfather must know she was missing. They all must be frantic with worry. How did she come to be injured, or end up in St. Clair’s coach? It must be important. Why could she not remember? She shook her head in annoyance when the effort promised to bring on a headache. It did not matter. All would come back in time, she decided. More important to her now was what to tell Devlin. Angel stirred restlessly and threw aside the quilt, which was also pink, she noted with a faint smile. She wrapped a robe around her shoulders before she wandered over to peer out the window. Looking overly large in the small walled garden below, his hair glinting in the sunlight, St. Clair tossed a ball to Adam. How handsome he was. Not just that, he was fun, and kind and thoughtful—and he was not for her. Catching sight of her, he grinned and blew her a kiss. Angel couldn’t resist smiling back before she scurried away from the window. She was still in her nightclothes! Wretched man, he so delighted in teasing her. But would he continue to do so if he knew who she was? She put her mind once more on the problem of whether she should tell him she had regained much of her memory. She did not believe he would be pleased to learn she was a lady of gentle birth whose grandfather carried little influence. Not on the scale of his position, but more than respectable. No, he would feel compelled to marry her in truth, to save her reputation, even though she was not compromised. Not entirely, she admitted to herself with a smug little grin. There were those kisses and such, but who would know if she did not tell anyone?
The idea of forcing Devlin into an unwanted marriage made her feel ill. There was no other decision possible. She liked being Angel, and Angel she would stay. Time enough for explanations when they reached England. She would slip away and leave him free to follow his own pursuits. Besides, it would not be wise—could almost be dangerous—to distract him from his mission at this point. No, she would say nothing. Having neatly rationalized why she should, not lie exactly, but simply keep silent, Angel washed with the water she found in the pretty pink‐flowered bowl on her dressing table and hurried to finish dressing. Paula arrived soon after, bearing a laden tray, and by the time St. Clair and Adam bounded in a short time later, she was seated at a low table, dressed in pink muslin—for how could she resist?—enjoying sweet rolls and coffee. “Good morning, Mrs. Williams.” St. Clair adroitly slipped a brioche from her plate. “We aren’t all slugabeds, ma’am. Some of us have been up for hours, working up an appetite.” He assumed a virtuous expression and she laughed. “How nice for you, Mr. Williams,” Angel returned demurely, amused by the smug look on his face. “Such virtue deserves reward. Do help yourself.” Anticipating his next request, she poured coffee into a cup and handed it to him. Smiling his thanks, he accepted the offering and sipped at it as he surveyed the room. Angel watched in delight as astonishment bloomed on his face. “…and I will make thee beds of roses,” she said, awaiting his reaction. His gaze lingered on her gown and a look of pure joy lit his face. “‘Ah, but the best of things, beyond their measure, cloy’,” he responded, choking with laughter. “Gad, Angel. Best take care we don’t mistake you for the napery.” Paula and Adam both looked so bewildered at the convulsions that followed this sally, that Angel laughed all the harder. The maid shook her head at this foolishness and deftly rescued the chattering cup from St. Clair’s hand. “Now, then,” Paula admonished, “do finish your meal, ma’am. And you as well, sir.” With a few weak chuckles, Angel and St. Clair meekly obeyed Paula’s command. “It’s the room, Paula,” Angel attempted to explain when she could trust her voice. “Everything is pink.” “Why, yes ma’am, and very pretty it is. I’ve never seen anything like it.” Paula gave an admiring look around and began refilling their cups. “Yes, it is lovely,” Angel replied, not daring to meet St. Clair’s eye. Instead, she motioned Adam to the place by her side. “You must be hungry, too, mon ami. There is some milk here as well, I believe.” Drawn by her smile, Adam ducked his head and slipped into the chair. “Thank you, Mrs. Williams,” he said politely, taking a buttery croissant and slathering it with jam. “Mrs. Williams? How very formal you are today, Adam. I hope I have not fallen into disfavor.” “Oh, no, ma’am,” Adam denied with a quick shake of his head. “But Miss Peters told me it was not right to be calling you Miss Angel.” “Nor is it,” Paula defended herself, a determined look on her face. “Tis not at all fitting.”
Angel exchanged a glance with the Earl. “I very much like ‘Miss Angel’,” she said. “But most likely Miss Peters is right.” “Indeed, Miss Peters is quite right.” St. Clair’s agreement earned him a grateful look from the maid. “However, I think if you reserve your ‘Miss Angel’ for those times when we are alone, all the proprieties will be met.” Seeming satisfied with this, Adam finished his breakfast and a few minutes later went to check on Hickory, along with a pacified Miss Peters. “Have you always made a habit of picking up strays?” St. Clair asked idly from where he stood at the window watching Adam and Paula enter the garden. Angel drew in a loud breath, and he swung around to face her. “Of course you wouldn’t know,” he amended at once. “I keep forgetting about your memory, love. Don’t pay the slightest attention to me. It doesn’t matter in the least what you remember,” he assured her. Angel kept her eyes on the floor, afraid to look at him. Now the time had come, she felt wretchedly guilty about deceiving him, even if it was for his benefit. She quashed her prodding conscience and firmly dismissed her own motives for remaining silent. “Angel?” Sounding alarmed by her long silence, he walked over, pulled her to her feet and cupped her chin in his hand. “I can not abide tears, you know,” he chided, his voice rough with concern, and she forced herself to meet his gaze. “I do know, Devlin.” “I won’t have you worrying about your memory,” he decreed. He took her into his arms and nestled her against his shoulder. “You can trust me to take care of you.” His fierce tone of voice, so at odds with the warmth in his eyes, made her smile. “Yes, I know I can.” “Good.” Seeming satisfied with what he saw in her face, his grip relaxed, but he made no move to release her, instead burying his face in the silky cloud of her hair. Almost afraid to breathe, Angel leaned against him, savoring this brief time in his arms. This was not the same as a teasing, stolen kiss or two. In this special moment, she could sense his need of her, and she sighed with contentment, relieved the emotional scene the previous night was not going to prevent him from touching her. “Be still, Angel. I just want to hold you for a few minutes.” Angel smiled dreamily, relishing the warmth of his strong body against her. She was quite willing to stand there forever, if he so desired, though she knew his conscience would end the interlude all too soon. And in truth, it was the Earl who moved away first, the stern look on his face making her heart ache. If only….The wistful thought slid away and she stepped back. “You are too tempting a morsel for even a saint,” he joked. His words brought a rush of colour to her cheeks and the moment safely passed. He urged her into a chair and brought another to place beside her. Angel searched his face, disturbed by the serious look in his eyes. “Is something amiss?” she asked. Perhaps she had been too forward and he believed he was at fault? “I quite like it when you hold me,” she admitted with a shy smile. A gleam of amusement touched his eyes and he gently pinched her cheek. “Do you, Mrs. Williams? I like it as well. Too much for my peace of mind, in fact, but that isn’t what I have
on my conscience just now. The truth is, I am about to involve you further in my nefarious schemes and I’m feeling damned guilty about it. I should have left you, safe and sound aboard the ‘Lady Gay’ and said the hell with la Comtesse and her crazy demands.” “La Comtesse is your contact here? But she is a recluse! Paula told me there are weeks when she never leaves her room. There is much gossip about her, you know. People wonder what she is hiding, hidden away as she is.” “That may well be, but the woman is not entirely secluded. She does receive visitors upon occasion. Therein lays the problem.” He ran his fingers through his hair with an impatient gesture and jumped up to pace around the room. “La Comtesse admits only those of the fairer sex to her rooms.” He threw her a mocking smile. “Obviously, I don’t qualify and just as obviously you do. That is why I needed a wife for this venture, because la Comtesse is an eccentric woman.” He turned to face her, his expression grim. “It seemed simpler in England. A wedding journey through France, a stop here and there to make our stay seem nothing out of the ordinary, and what could be more natural than my wife being invited to meet with our hostess? However, I have a bad feeling about this and I’ve learned to trust my instincts. Besides, I hate being manipulated.” Hands stuffed in pockets, he stalked back to the window, his anger and frustration apparent in the stiff set of his shoulders. Angel watched him with growing amazement. She rose and approached him, uncertain as to the reason for his ire, and cautiously laid her hand on his arm. “I don’t understand why you are angry. If it is simply that I am to meet with la Comtesse, why, I can surely do so.” She could do anything the unknown Amanda could, she thought bitterly, irrationally hurt and angry by this reminder he had been about to marry this Amanda person. Someone who had cried off and left Devlin to salvage his mission. Perhaps he still loved her. Maybe that was the real reason he continued to put her off, not some misplaced gallantry. St. Clair looked down at her, an odd expression on his face, and gently lifted her hand from his arm before he moved away and resumed his pacing. “No, another solution must be found,” he insisted. Angel turned to stare out the window, struggling to subdue her pain at this rejection. He did not wish her to help him. It seemed they were to be partners in this adventure only when it suited him. Should she tell him she knew of the gold hidden in the coach? Gold meant for the Frenchwoman, it appeared, though she suspected some had gone to others along their way. Why the English government was supplying these funds to the French, she did not yet understand, but she was sure there was a good explanation for it. Whatever the reason, it was important, and she would not allow Devlin to risk all at this stage in some misguided effort to protect her. What nonsense. No doubt the danger was all in his mind. What harm could it do to meet with la Comtesse? She swiped fiercely at her eyes with her kerchief before turning to face him, her chin at an angle she knew would have instantly alerted her family she was about to do battle.
“You are being quite absurd, sir. There cannot be any danger in my meeting with la Comtesse. You said yourself it would be natural for her to invite your wife to tea. Unless there is much more to it than I have been told?” The challenging lilt in her voice halted him almost in mid‐stride and he glowered at her. “It is dangerous. You don’t know the whole of it, and will not,” he vowed in a hard voice. “No, I’ve decided Paula will do just as well. She can borrow one of your gowns. You can alter it a bit, I suppose.” “A bit? It would take more than that if you wish her to be decently covered,” Angel scoffed, picturing the pleasingly plump and more buxom Miss Peters. Reminded of this critical difference in size, St. Clair had the grace to smile. “A new dress, then,” he conceded. Angel shook her head impatiently. “This is nonsense, Devlin. Paula is a dear girl but she would give herself away as soon as she opened her mouth. Her French is impossible and her English unusual.” Angel lowered her voice, very aware of the cold look on his face. “Why is it dangerous for me to meet with la Comtesse? Should you not tell me? Perhaps it would help if I told you I know about the gold.” Anger quickly replaced St. Clair’s stunned expression at this admission. “Confound it, Angel, you were eavesdropping,” he growled. “On the ship? That was meant to be a private conversation.” Angel met his glare with a cold look of her own. “You have a sharp tongue, sir, and are quick to judge me for listening to you and Captain Carlisle, but what would you have done, if you had awakened alone, in a strange place not knowing who you are or where you were?” In spite of her effort to remain calm, her voice was tight and she glared at him defiantly. The Earl’s mouth twisted in a wry, mocking smile. “Since I would have done the same, I can only apologize and admit I was at fault in assuming privacy in the close confines of a ship. Nevertheless, the subject of our conversation is not something you should know. It is a danger to you.” He laid his hands on her shoulders and shook his head, his expression softening a little. “You are not making this easy for me, my dear.” Angel stood stiffly before him, unwilling to relent. “Should I?” she retorted, resisting the appealing warmth growing in his eyes with an effort. “Yes.” His prompt, abrupt answer almost made her smile, but she would not allow him to deter her. “You are quite outrageous, you know. I will not be put off. The success of this venture depends on staying with the original plan. We need to discuss this further.” “So we do, but not here. Even the walls have ears, I’ve learned.” He stepped aside to pick up her bonnet, plopped it on her head and tugged her toward the door. “Come, we will continue this conversation outside.” Angel gave him a dark look at this reference to her eavesdropping but made no objection. In this room, in the garden, wherever, she was not about to be left out of this adventure.
Chapter Eleven The small garden was deserted. Angel followed St. Clair to the back wall, where a stone bench provided a clear view of the surroundings. In this sheltered area, some early spring flowers bloomed brightly around a small pool. She sniffed at the fragrant air. It smelled a little like her garden at home, and she was flooded with a wave of homesickness. Poor Grandpère. How worried he and Marie must be. They needed to finish this business and get home. Angel folded her hands in her lap and tried to look both patient and attentive. St. Clair chose not to sit, instead resting one booted foot against the cold marble, his arm braced across his knee. He was finding it difficult to share his secrets, she realized, studying his set face. Was it due to this ingrained habit men had of protecting their women from unpleasantness? Or had he some other reason? Not that she was his woman; although she knew he felt responsible for her. She had heard him tell Captain Carlisle he was glad his fiancé had run off with another man; that he would have been marrying solely out of duty. If that was true, could he perhaps grow to love her? Ah bien, she would make good use of the remaining days to make Devlin love her, just a little bit. Then, when she was reunited with her grandfather, they could meet again in more formal settings, and maybe, just maybe, he would view her differently, not as the waif he persisted on calling her. Deep in a fantasy of drifting around a brilliantly lit ballroom in St. Clair’s arms, Angel heard his voice through a fog. “Angel? Angel! You haven’t heard a word I’ve said. What on earth are you thinking about?” He gave her shoulder an impatient shake. Angel blinked in surprise and felt the heat rush to her face. Embarrassed to be caught dreaming about him, she gave an airy shrug. “Nothing in particular. I was just trying to sort things out in my mind and wondering when you were going to tell me exactly what is going on.” She looked up at him with wide‐eyed innocence and gave him a demure smile. The Earl leaned back, eyes narrowed. “Were you, indeed? I wonder.” The look on his face expressed his doubt at her answer, and she looked away with a jerk of her chin. He could think what he liked. She felt his gaze on her face for a long moment before he dropped down on the bench beside her and stretched out his legs. “I’ve told you about Napoleon and the terror that preceded him. England has been fighting French aggression for ten years and it is not over yet. Not by a long shot. This truce has been a breathing space for both sides, although not all in the government would care to admit it. There are some, however, who have a more prudent and farseeing nature, or have fewer illusions, perhaps. They have foreseen an end to this peace very soon and no Englishman will be welcome here. It is fortunate for us that not everyone in France is content with the new regime. There are a few, a precious few, who risk their lives to work secretly against Napoleon. La Comtesse is one of them.” “That is why you bring her the money. She will see it distributed to these people,” Angel responded after a pause, though she couldn’t help a sudden shiver at the dispassionate words. “I still don’t understand why you refuse to allow me to meet with la Comtesse. She cannot be
expecting me to personally carry the gold to her.” She whispered the last and St. Clair smiled a little, but there was no warmth in his eyes. “It is not what you take in that is the problem. It is what you are to bring out.” He paused, and then with obvious reluctance answered the question in her eyes. “A list of royalists who are in the right places to gather information and pass it to our agents.” “Oh.” Her breath eased out in a long sigh. “That is dangerous knowledge indeed. But I will not look at the names.” He laughed shortly. “La Comtesse insists the list be memorized and destroyed before leaving her rooms.” “Oh,” Angel said again, a bit shaken by this information. “Bien, it is well I can read, in that case. Are there very many, Devlin? I would not like to forget any of them.” The Earl stared at her in astonishment for a moment and then jumped to his feet to loom over her. “Haven’t you heard me? Once you are privy to that list, your life will be in serious danger. England is not the only country to have agents, and I have reason to believe there has been a leak about our true presence here. No, I will not permit it. Madame will have to reconsider her position on this. Or Paula can go, somehow.” Angel stood as well, her back stiff and her shoulders set. “Most likely Paula cannot read,” she told him crisply. “No, I will see your Comtesse, and we will then speed to England as soon as may be. You haven’t any choice.” She laid her hand on his cheek. How difficult this was for him, she realized. “Devlin, there is no one else. Who would suspect us? Especially now Adam and Paula have joined us, and Hickory, too. Why, no one would imagine that spies would carry a duck along with them.” “We are not spies! Your imagination gets away from you, Mrs. Williams,” he snarled. “I will be very careful, I promise. I will come right to you and tell you the names and forget them, I swear it.” She laughed, and added, “I am very good at forgetting things, you know.” “I hope so, for your sake,” he answered, his expression dour. He seemed disinclined to share even this little bit of humor. “When is this rendezvous to take place?” “Soon. Tomorrow, in fact.” “Well enough.” Excitement mixed with fear coursed through her but she smiled brightly at him, ignoring his scowl. She would not brood on this and had no intention of allowing him to do so either. After all, nothing was ever gained by worrying. Determined to distract him in some manner, she was pleased to see Adam skipping towards them, Hickory bouncing in his arms. “Have you been out of the garden?” he called to them. “There is a rather nice river nearby, but Miss Peters says Hickory may not come back if I take him there. Do you think so, sir?” Adam presented his case with a cheerful nonchalance that gave the maid’s prediction no credit at all. “I think it very likely, Adam,” St. Clair answered. “You are kind to want your pet to swim in a river, but it seems a pond will make him just as happy. Look.”
Hickory had squirmed from Adam’s arms and flapped to the ground. Quacking loudly, the duck waddled to the water and glided into the tiny pool with a satisfied squawk. Delighted, Angel laughed. “Hickory is a clever duck,” she declared, watching the creature’s antics. “Oh, he does like it here,” Adam exclaimed, looking disappointed. “Then may I go to see the river?” he asked with a hopeful smile. St. Clair looked over at Angel, and at her tiny nod, laid his hand on the boy’s shoulder. “A fine idea, lad.” “Indeed it is,” Angel agreed. “In fact, Mr. Williams was about to invite us to stroll about the city, were you not, sir?” She looked up at him with a mocking smile. Something dangerous flickered in his eyes at the hint of challenge in her voice. It was perhaps not wise to engage him thusly. He had far more experience at this game of flirting than she. But how else was one to learn? “Why, I believe I was going to suggest that very thing, Mrs. Williams.” He lifted her hand to his lips. Her eyes opened wide, the warmth of his mouth on her palm stealing her breath, and he smiled widely, taking her firmly by the elbow when she seemed incapable of movement. “Shall we go, my dear?” His look said he knew exactly how he was affecting her, and she gave herself a mental shake, took Adam’s hand, and began to stroll along the path, ignoring St. Clair’s low rumble of laughter. Trailed by the faithful Paula, and leaving Hickory paddling in the pond, they ventured out onto the streets of Amiens. Of course, one had to begin sightseeing at the great Gothic cathedral, where they were amazed and entertained by the reliefs on the west front. Properly awed by the grand structure, they found the curious network of small canals enclosing the market gardens of much more interest. It was possible to purchase every imaginable foodstuff from the growers on their barges who peddled their wares with loud enthusiasm. Charmed by the noisy, colorful scene, they wandered about until aching feet sent them back to the hôtel in a hired conveyance. Angel leaned against the cushions as the carriage clattered over the cobblestones, a satisfied smile on her lips. A most successful excursion; just exactly the diversion she wanted. St. Clair was an excellent guide, full of wild, imaginative stories that had kept them laughing throughout the afternoon. Adam’s face glowed with pleasure at the outing, although she believed he would be fortunate to stay awake until they reached the hôtel. A sharply dressed troop of militia marching by caught her attention. Oh, how Grandpère would have enjoyed this, Angel mused, reminded of him by the soldiers. Suddenly she longed for her own snug house, wondering what he was doing right now. Most likely he had raised a hue and cry across the width of England. She knew he would search the world if need be, until he found her. Her only regret was that her disappearance would so distress him. There was nothing she could do to reassure either Grandpère or Marie of her well‐being, however, and she could not dwell on it. For now she would try to put her concern for them out of her mind and concentrate on their purpose here in France. There would be fences to mend when she
returned. She would need every bit of the General’s influence and smooth tongue to help her then. But now, now she would enjoy these last days of freedom.
Chapter Twelve Chiding herself for feeling as nervous as a schoolgirl, Angel firmly resisted the urge to wipe her damp hands on her skirt. She gazed around the dim hallway on the top‐most floor of the tall building, where the stern‐faced maid whose vocabulary seemed made entirely of monosyllables, had guided her. “Come, wait.” Angel echoed the maidservant’s words under her breath, amused in spite of her annoyance. Ungracious but effective, she admitted to herself with a smile. For here I stand, in a draughty corridor quaking in my shoes like some unassuming pensioner. Heartened by this comic picture of herself, she turned her attention to the door in front of her. The woman is only human, Angel told herself when the wide expanse of oak clicked open and her stomach lurched uncomfortably. She squared her shoulders and stepped across the threshold. But she could not quite stifle a faint gasp at the sight before her. One end of the huge room facing her was a greenhouse, where plants and small trees grew in profusion, their varied shades of green a backdrop for the flowers that bloomed everywhere. Enthralled, Angel moved closer, admiring the ingenious combination of dormer and conservatory transforming what appeared to be almost the entire floor of the old house. The air was thick with the scent of flowers and growing plants and the river gleamed in the distance beyond the rooftops below. The whole effect was stunning to the senses. Angel touched one glossy leaf with her finger. She would very much like to know why someone would go to this much trouble and expense. It must have cost a fortune. Alerted by the rustle of material behind her, Angel swung around to face the approaching black clad figure. “Since I no longer go out into the world, I brought some of the world to me.” The unmistakable clear tones of Parisian French were un‐muffled by the heavy veil covering her hostess’ face. Gathering her wits, Angel stepped forward, trying not to stare. “It is lovely, Madame,” she responded in the same language, automatically sinking into a curtsey. The soft, warm laughter and outstretched hand was a further surprise. “Come, child. We have no formality here.” La Comtesse led Angel to a chair, one of several grouped in front of a fireplace, motioned her to be seated, and sank gracefully onto the chaise‐lounge opposite before picking up and ringing a small silver bell. “Visitors to my aerie are too infrequent too stand on ceremony, my dear. We shall have some wine and you will tell me something of your life in England.” Angel managed a weak smile, her mind in turmoil. What was she to say? Was it possible la Comtesse knew she was an imposter? She had a feeling Madame knew a great deal more than St. Clair suspected. She waited until the same black clad maid who led her here had served the wine and left a platter of pastries on a small table, and then, choosing her words with care, spun a picture of
life among the haut ton. Thank goodness the Earl had told her so much of his life, that night in Rouen, or she would have been in trouble before she had a chance to begin. “It must sound a frivolous way of life to you, Madame,” Angel said at last, when the Frenchwoman’s questions were at an end. “But it is only a few months of the year. My husband expects to spend more time at his country home now that he is wed.” Heat flaring in her cheeks at the whopper, as she had no idea how the Earl planned to spend his time, Angel stared at the delicate glass in her hand. Mistaking her blushes for the natural shyness of a new bride, Madame laughed lightly. “Of course your husband will wish to have you to himself for a time, for you are delightful, my dear, Amanda, is it not? But you use the charming diminutive, Angel, yes? It is somewhat unusual.” “Yes,” Angel agreed, hoping her dismay was not obvious. Madame was indeed well informed. “My husband began it to tease me and then other people began to use it,” she explained. But rather than decry Angel false, the woman seemed to relax, as if she had crossed some hurdle. It was, Angel reflected, most difficult to converse with someone whose face was hidden; although the woman’s elegant gestures were quite expressive. Angel set her glass aside and looked around curiously. Another fireplace, also unlit, graced the wall behind la Comtesse, and she leaned forward in an effort to better see the portrait over the mantel. “You are interested in my home?” the Frenchwoman asked pleasantly, rising. “Come, you shall have a better look.” Angel stood and followed her across the room. The painting was of a young woman, dressed in the court dress of the previous century. “My grandmother.” Was there pride in the cool voice, Angel wondered as she examined the portrait? A face of almost ethereal beauty stared serenely back and even against the dead white of the powdered hair her skin glowed with a translucence that made Angel sigh with envy. The artist had caught more than the undeniable loveliness. A certain lift to the small chin and the cool glint in the dark eyes made her suspect that this woman was not one easily deterred from any path she had chosen. “She was very beautiful,” Angel replied, fascinated. “And trés formidable, I think.” La Comtesse laughed, seeming pleased at her guest’s insight. “Yes, that describes Grandmère very well. She knew great joy and great sorrow in her lifetime and met both with a tremendous strength. She has been an inspiration to me. Although I fear I have not met misfortune with such fortitude.” This last comment was close to a whisper, almost as if she spoke only to herself. Angel glanced sideways at her hostess, regretting once again she could not see her face. She sensed Madame referred to the circumstances leading to her isolation in the strange bower, but there was to be no explanation. Responding to an unspoken command, she returned to her chair, while la Comtesse glided to the far end of the room and slipped behind a tall screen. She reappeared almost immediately, a single sheet of paper in her hand. Slowly, so slowly that Angel could almost feel her doubts, la Comtesse approached; then with a final glance at the painting, handed Angel the paper.
“This is what you seek, my friend. It is to remain in your possession and yours alone. I will have your word on this.” The quiet voice was so compelling that Angel shivered. “Yes, I swear it,” Angel agreed in a low voice. Was she not to show these dearly bought names even to St. Clair? As if reading her mind, Madame laughed, though there was no humor in the sound. “Naturally, votre mari will expect to see what you hold. Which he will, when you are safely aboard your ship.” There was a challenge in the ringing words and once again Angel found herself subjected to a penetrating gaze she could not see. But that the Frenchwoman would not hesitate to withdraw the precious list from her hands she did not for a minute doubt. “You have my word, Madame,” she answered, pleased there was no revealing quiver in her voice. Already she was dreading having to face St. Clair with this unwelcome stipulation. La Comtesse was quiet for a long moment, her head tilted in a thoughtful manner, and Angel stirred uneasily. “You must not allow doubts to weaken you, my dear,” the Frenchwoman said at last, sitting once again. “All will be explained in time, and you shall manage your husband very well, I think. Indeed, I believe you capable of more than you know.” She hesitated, as if searching for the right words then went on more briskly. “There is a matter of greater importance than these names that we must speak of before you go. However, we will first speak of you. You will now tell me more of yourself, and not this time of your life in England, as an English miss, but of your French heritage.” Only a little disconcerted, Angel managed a calm response, knowing very well her accent was such that few Englishwomen would have. “It is as you surmise, Madame. I was born in France, my Papa being French, although Maman was English. But I left here as a child, during the revolution, and my life and loyalty are to England now. There is an affinity, of course, to the country of my birth. It could not be otherwise. But there are too many painful memories here, and little welcome, I suspect, to be wishful of any return.” Her eyes teared with pain and regret but the quiet assurance in her voice seemed to provide la Comtesse with some degree of satisfaction. The Frenchwoman leaned forward and grasped Angel’s hand in a firm grip. “Where were you born?” she demanded. Angel’s eyes widened at this sudden evidence of urgency, wondering why this should be of such importance. “Estarney, Madame,” she replied hesitantly. “My father was a solicitor in that town.” “Ah, my supposition is not as foolish as I feared.” With a sigh of satisfaction the Frenchwoman released her and sank back against the chaise lounge. “You have the look of your mother, child. I knew her, you see, and your papa, of course. He was killed.…” Words faltering, she rose and turned away. Angel struggled to control her emotions at this unexpected reminder of her loss. “You then are…?” she began and was immediately interrupted. “Yes. It is not to be said, even here in this haven,” la Comtesse said tersely. “That world no longer exists for me.” She turned back to face Angel and drew her to her feet. “You must listen
to me now. There is an enemy in your midst, a traitor to both our countries.” Her voice was tinged with bitterness. “It shames me deeply, that he has come to this. You will hear this, my child, and see justice done. This you must vow to do.” “Madame,” Angel began to protest, trembling under the force of the woman’s insistence. “I know nothing of.…” “Your promise.” The curt words brooked no denial, and feeling powerless to refuse, Angel nodded. “You have it, Madame. I shall do as you wish,” she agreed. The Frenchwoman’s breath escaped in a hiss. She released Angel’s hand and once again stood and took a swift turn about the room, her agitation obvious. “You are shocked, naturallement. This was not part of my agreement with your government, although they will make no objections, I assure you.” The veiled woman laughed, a harsh, bitter sound, and walked back to where Angel stood frozen with disquiet. “You look frightened, child, and that is not such a bad thing, for it will keep you alert. Given the choice, I would have chosen someone older, more experienced in the ways of the world. But all regular channels are closed to me now. I am watched too carefully. It must be you. It is perhaps fate that brought you here, tied as we are by the events of that fateful night so long ago. Listen well, for I speak of things known to very few.” Halting at times, the Frenchwoman related the story of her family and the death of Marcel Deveneau. “Your father was very brave, but he could not prevail against le Comte.” She pushed aside the veil with a shaking hand. Angel’s horrified cry at the sight of the livid scars that streaked from forehead to chin drew a mirthless laugh from the Frenchwoman. “He left me there, my dear brother Robert, at the mercy of the fire, and only by the grace of God and the devotion of my faithful Gaston and Louise did I survive. They took me to a convent where the nuns risked much to shelter and nurse me.” Seeming at the end her strength, she sank down on the chaise. “Madame,” Angel whispered, while the tears she had kept in check throughout the dreadful tale ran down her cheeks. She knelt beside her and grasped la Comtesse’s hands tightly in hers. “Forgive me for reviving these terrible memories. We never heard, you understand. Papa just.…” Angel choked, unable to continue. La Comtesse took in a deep, harsh breath and freed one hand to touch Angel’s cheek. “The time for tears is past, child. It was long ago and only the knowledge that Robert continues to do harm brings me to speak of it. You will best serve me now by seeing he is stopped before he can do more harm. The end of this peace grows near.” The Frenchwoman smelled of the lightest flowery scent and Angel felt an easing of the tension that held her rigid. She dared to lay a hand on the clenched fist lying in the woman’s lap. “I am so very sorry, Madame,” she managed, knowing her words to be hopelessly inadequate. “It is good to learn of the truth at last. Thank you for telling me. I know it has been difficult for you to speak of it.” There was another long pause and Angel felt the hand under hers loosen.
“You have a strength that will serve you well, my dear. Now, hear me. He has used a secondary title in exile, which is the one honourable thing he has done, for ours was a name respected throughout France. You will know of him thusly.” La Comtesse leaned forward and whispered a name that forced a soft cry of surprise from Angel. This was a man in high places indeed; one she had read was a trusted friend of the Prince of Wales. “Justice will be done, Madame. He will soon be detained, you have my word.” “And so, it comes to an end at last.” The reply was almost inaudible and Angel sensed the woman’s thoughts were far from this bower. She could only imagine how difficult the Frenchwoman had found relating her story, and to a virtual stranger at that. Nor did she care to be the barer of it, Angel guessed, her admiration and sympathy growing for this proud lady. She hesitated, unsure if the interview was over. As if sensing her indecision, Madame rose, surprising her with a light embrace as she drew her to her feet. Moments later, a bemused and shaken Angel found herself at the door, a last “bonne chance” sighing in her ears, along with a low voiced sentence she did not understand at all. “‘Tell him, if you can, that retribution is not without pain.’” Angel repeated the words under her breath, once more facing the gleaming expanse of oak, intuitively sensing that the words were meant for her alone. Who was she to tell? The traitor? Much as she would like to confront him, she did not think she would ever see him, for surely the authorities would handle everything. Dispirited, she folded the paper with shaking fingers and tucked it into her chemise before she walked along the long corridor and down the winding stairway leading to the lower floors. What was she to tell Devlin? He would be so angry when she refused to give him the list, or tell him the traitor’s identity. Nor could she share la Comtesse’s story. Not yet. It was too new, too heart wrenching to speak of now. Reluctant to face St. Clair, she stood staring at the wide expanse of planking until she felt in control of her emotions, and her sense of humor made her realize how ridiculous she would look should another guest happen to appear. Bah. She was developing a strong dislike of doors. Smiling at this foolish notion, she lifted the latch and glided into the room with what she hoped was an air of casual unconcern, a bright smile pasted on her face “Bonjour, everyone. As you see, I have returned.” “Confound it, Angel. Where the devil have you been? You could have consumed a dozen or more cups of tea by now,” the Earl raged, jumping up to glower down at her. “Lord, you must be positively afloat.” “Mr. Williams! What a thing to say.” Angel put up her chin and stalked over to where a wide‐eyed Adam sat, ignoring both the Earl’s glare and what sounded amazingly like a giggle from Paula. “Oh, you have been playing at cards, I see. Have you had any luck?” She gestured at the discarded hands on the table. “A bit, Miss Angel. Mr. Williams owes me 10,000 francs, which I think is very good, for I am not much in the way of playing cards.” Adam grinned at her, plainly enjoying his winnings.
“But I think Hickory wishes to go out now,” he hurried to add after a glance at the Earl’s face “Perhaps Miss Peters could take us into the garden?” “A very good idea, young man,” Paula agreed at once. She gave Angel a sympathetic look and swept her charges from the room. The door closed behind them with a quiet click that sounded to Angel’s ears something akin to a death knell. Her legs seemed incapable of holding her upright and she sank into Adam’s just vacated chair, idly picking up the cards and turning them in her hands. “Do you realize you have been gone for over two hours?” The deadly calm voice did not deceive her for an instant. He was truly angry. Sneaking a look at his face from under her lashes, she stifled a sigh, turned her head toward him, and met his burning gaze squarely. Ah bien, it was not her fault, after all. He was being quite unreasonable. “I could not be rude, could I? It is not at all the thing to hurry your hostess, you know,” she retorted, guilt stiffening her backbone. Hadn’t Grandpère always said offense is the best defense? “An entire afternoon doesn’t approach hurry,” he retorted. “What could possibly have taken so long? You were to get the list and get out, not spend hours nattering with a stranger I have no reason to trust, while I’ve been worried half to death,” he barked, looking daggers at her. Stunned at this outburst, Angel bristled with indignation. She was not feeling inclined to humor his unnecessary forebodings. She had not been in the least danger. “You are.…” Abruptly, he tugged her from the chair and cut off her response with a swift kiss. “Don’t say it. A good wife never contradicts her husband,” he said when he straightened. A look of surprise replaced the ice in his eyes and he licked his lips. “Mmm, you taste delicious.” He ran his tongue across her lips again. “You’ve been drinking! It’s no wonder you stayed so long.” “One little glass of wine is not drinking, Devlin,” she protested, backing away under the suspicious gleam in his eyes. “Just one? Perhaps I should take another sample,” he drawled skeptically. He caught her arms and drew her close. Angel stood breathless under his intent gaze as he slowly bent his head. His mouth was warm, so warm, caressing her lips with an easy motion, until she melted against him. “Definitely two,” he said when he released her, his voice husky. “Perhaps. Perhaps it was two. But I am not in the least foxed, you know,” she assured him. She smiled at him. He had really been worried about her. St. Clair gave a crack of laughter at this. He put his hands on her shoulders and gave her a gentle shake. “No, I can see that, my sweet. Nor like to be after two glasses of wine.” His humor somewhat restored, he grinned at her. “Sit down, Angel. I promise to behave and we have much to discuss.” Angel eyed him warily, reminded that she did not at all wish to tell him of the Frenchwoman’s stipulations. She sat beside him on the bed, hands clasped tightly in her lap. He was not going to be pleased. “You wished to discuss something?” she asked, trying to look unconcerned and not as apprehensive as she felt.
“Do I wish to discuss something? What a deuced odd thing to say. Of course I want to discuss something. You’ve been shut up with that bizarre woman all afternoon. What did you talk about?” “She is not bizarre,” Angel protested, her voice tight with indignation. “Madame has had a difficult life. She....” His hands clamped forcefully on her forearms. “I don’t give two hoots about her past life,” he bit out. “Did you get the names?” The last was close to a shout and Angel blinked. “There is no need to browbeat me, sir. Yes, I have the names,” she admitted with wounded dignity. She cautiously freed herself and edged away from him, just a tiny bit intimidated by his frowning impatience. “However, I cannot give them to you until we reach the ship,” she added in a rush, then jumped to her feet and stepped away. “The devil you say,” St. Clair bellowed, halting her attempted flight with one firm hand on her wrist. “Devlin! Someone might hear you.” “They will think I am beating my wife, as is only right and proper,” he growled. Angel looked at him curiously. “Would you beat me?” she breathed, looking up at him with wide‐eyed innocence. “Beat you?” he repeated. “Perhaps I should, although there are other things I would prefer to do.” She sighed and relaxed against him. “What kind of things?” “This.” He ran his fingers through her hair. “And this.” He cupped the back of her head in his hands, massaging her scalp and she moved closer and laid her hand on his broad chest. “What else?” she whispered. “This.” St. Clair stopped abruptly. “Oh, no you don’t,” he growled. “Somehow you always manage to distract me with your tricks but it won’t work this time.” He put her at arm’s length, walked across the room, and poured himself a glass of wine. “But I was not,” Angel protested, feeling very pleased to have done so. She dropped her head to hide her smile and peered up at him through her eyelashes. St. Clair looked justifiably skeptical and his eyes narrowed. “Then you won’t mind getting back to the subject at hand, will you? Which is, of course, the entire reason for this crazy journey, in case you’d forgotten.” He sat his glass on the small table and pulled out a chair. “Sit,” he ordered, and then sat beside her. She gave him a reproachful look. “You have no need to be sarcastic. I know very well our purpose here. I have what you came for and I will give it to you on the ship. It hardly matters how the information gets to England.” “It matters to me,” he said flatly. “I prefer to handle my own responsibilities, thank you.” Angel stiffened and tipped up her chin. “You are being unreasonable, sir. I have no more desire to hold these names than you, but I’ve given my word. You must understand that.” “Honour amongst your sex, my dear? Not likely, in my experience,” he sneered. “What a dreadful thing to say.” Furious, she jumped up and glared at him. “We have just as much honour as men. It’s obvious you have little understanding of women whatsoever.” Meeting her furious gaze with a cold look, St. Clair rose as well.
“No? I know enough to realize you and that peculiar Frenchwoman have conspired against me. Suppose something should happen to you? Suppose we are separated? You endanger yourself with this knowledge.” Angel drew herself up. “I should think it would be quite obvious to you, sir, if something should happen to me. You have only to pluck the list from my bosom and continue on. Far be it for me to impede your mission.” She threw the words at him and stalked to the door. “Angel.” The suddenly quiet voice stopped her in her tracks. “What?” “Did you say list?” “Yes.” St. Clair exhaled noisily and she turned to face him. He was regarding her with a grave expression, the anger fading from his eyes. “Will you come back and sit down?” he asked. Angel nodded, not trusting her voice. She was not blameless in this argument. She should have told him at once of this change in plans instead of her cowardly roundaboutation. As soon as they were both seated, she began explaining. “La Comtesse gave me a list of agents. I didn’t look at it, truly.” St. Clair leaned back and rested his chin in one hand and frowned. “I believe you. Even if you did, we expected you to memorize it. Something I still feel puts you in danger. What concerns me now is why Madame entrusted this information to paper. The whole point of my bringing a woman with me was so the information could be passed orally. Did she explain anything to you?” Angel swallowed back the lump of misery in her throat. She wished she didn’t need to tell him anything else. He would be so angry, and she couldn’t break her vow. She would never betray la Comtesse. She would not dare to lie to him either. That would be even worse than her lie of omission by not telling him she knew who she was. “Angel?” he prompted, looking puzzled by her long silence and appearance of dejection. The faintest of sobs brought him to his feet. “What is it, sweetheart? Confound it, Angel. Don’t cry. I’m a brute for shouting at you. Of course you can’t break your promise. Why, it would be the shabbiest thing for me to expect it.” He gathered her shaking body into his arms. “You mustn’t take my tempers to heart. Please don’t cry.” Angel looked up and gave him a wobbly smile. “It isn’t that, Devlin. I don’t mind a bit when you shout at me,” she said in a choked voice. “Madame did not give me any explanation, not about this list, anyway, but I think she wrote down the names because they aren’t important to her.” He looked startled, but did not interrupt. “She told me something else, you see, something that isn’t written down. Oh, Devlin, she told me of a traitor in England, and I’m not to tell you of that, either, until we reach the ship.” She moved away from him a little. “I know it isn’t right to keep this from you, and if you insist….” Her voice trailed off. “You would be much happier if I didn’t,” he finished her sentence, his voice harsh with anger. “You aren’t angry?” She dared to meet his gaze.
“Oh, I’m angry enough, but not at you. This whole blasted business has been badly managed from the start. I can’t deny that I would like to wring the woman’s neck for involving you to this extent.” Eyes narrowed in thought, he released her and reached for the wine. Pouring them each a glass, he handed her one as he drew her up beside him. “A traitor. No wonder the French seemed so well informed. I knew my uncle had some suspicion of it, but it seemed so improbable. The gentleman is well placed, I assume?” “Yes.” “Listen to me, Angel.” He set aside his glass and grasped her hand. “This is too important to trust to fate. I will do everything in my power to keep you safe, but things could conspire against us. We are watched here, I am sure of it. I won’t ask you to break your vow now, though that time may come. Do you understand? I want you to write the name on the back of the list and put it somewhere safe. Will you do that much for me?” “Yes,” she replied after the briefest of hesitations. “Good girl. Do it now, while I am out. There are some things I need to take care of. We leave early tomorrow so I need you to see to the packing.” He softened the orders with a light kiss and she managed a tremulous smile. “Very well, we will be ready.” As soon as the door closed behind him, she placed her glass on the table and grabbed the paper from her bodice. A pen, where had she noticed a pen? There. Now ink. With shaking fingers, she wrote Entremont’s name on the back of the list and looked around for a hiding place. Hickory’s basket seemed too chancy a choice. No, it was best on her person, she decided, but not just stuffed in her chemise. She scrambled through her wardrobe, certain Paula would soon appear. Her hand lingered on the beautiful blue gown Devlin had secretly, over her protests, had made for her, but it was not at all appropriate for travel and baggage could be lost. She settled on a heavier dress of twilled wool and began picking apart the seam at the waistline. That done, she rummaged for a needle and thread, which did not match, but no matter. It would not be noticeable if she took care. She was calmly setting the last stitches when Paula hurried in, Adam at her heels. “Why, ma’am. There is no need for you to be doing such chores. I would be happy to mend that for you.” Paula looked so horrified that Angel couldn’t help laughing. “I am quite capable of such a little task, I assure you. But thank you. It was the merest trifle and in any case, I have just finished. What you can do, Paula, and you as well, Adam, is help me attend to the packing. We leave in the morning. If all goes well, very soon we will be sailing for home, which cannot but please.” Wide smiles indicated their agreement with this statement, and the three of them set to work, chatting as they gathered their belongings. “I don’t mind telling you it is a relief to be getting on,” Paula said to Angel while Adam was out of the room on an errand. “There is a feeling on the street that makes a person uncomfortable, if you understand what I mean.” Angel looked at her, head tilted in question. “Oh? Is it perhaps that the English guests have outstayed their welcome?” “That’s it exactly, ma’am. No one has been rude, you understand, but.…” She broke off with a shrug. “Anyway, I thought you should know.” Paula turned back to folding clothes and putting them into the trunk. She was soon absorbed in her task, looking a little less worried.
Angel watched her for a few minutes. She is glad to have this off her mind. Was St. Clair aware of this? It was possible a man would not have noticed so subtle a thing. She would tell him of it. He might well find it useful information to add to the other secrets he held in that clever brain of his. Now she wanted nothing better than to put it all aside for a time and perhaps wear her lovely gown this evening while they dined. Quite inappropriate, she knew, for a family meal in their suite, but another opportunity may not occur. Her fingers stroked the shining satin as she recalled how pleased Devlin had been in arranging this wonderful surprise for her. His pleasure in the gift was almost as great as hers in receiving it. He was coming to care for her. He already wanted to kiss and touch her. It was a beginning and perhaps in time he would learn to love her. She would wear the beautiful gown tonight to surprise him. For who knew what tomorrow might bring?
Chapter Thirteen It brought rain. Billowing, wind‐driven sheets of it, slanting across the rough stones of the inn’s courtyard and running swiftly along the gutters of the streets. St. Clair scowled at the sight of Angel rushing toward the coach, her hood clenched in one hand while she struggled to raise her skirts above the puddles with the other. Foolish woman. Why hadn’t she waited for him? He dashed from beneath the shelter of the inn’s portico and swung her into his arms with an exasperated growl. “Gad, Angel. Why you women insist on wearing the most inappropriate clothing is beyond me.” She clung to him and laughed. “Why, Mr. Williams, I had no idea you were so open minded. Breeches would be much more suitable for this weather. I shall have some made up as soon as we return home.” She gave him a sly glance from beneath her lashes as he placed her, none too gently, into the coach. “Shameless as well as fresh mouthed, are you? Be warned, my girl, for I’ll have you over my knee, breeches or no.” “Would you really? Almost you tempt me.” She smiled sweetly as he climbed in after her. Caught by the sultry challenge in her eyes, his sharp retort died on his lips, the vision of her slender form encased in trousers sending his mind racing. “Little girls who toy with fire get burned.” The low voiced warning sparked a challenging gleam in the wide blue eyes gazing at him. “But I am not a little girl.” “No, you are not.” Her face flamed at his hot gaze, and she dropped her eyes and laughed softly. “It really is too bad of me, to be teasing you so in the morning, just when you prefer to be most out of sorts.” Her merry smile invited him to join in her amusement and St. Clair smiled back, no more immune to her infectious giggle than Adam and Paula. Certain he had imagined that look of alluring promise, he shrugged off a pang of regret. “Wishing to reform me already? And the wedding trip not yet over. How enterprising you are, my dear.” “A lifelong challenge, I daresay,” she replied with a laugh, then looked toward the window. “Will you not tell us what sights we might see today? If the rain stops?” she asked. St. Clair studied the grey mist obscuring the view through the window. It would be wise to follow her lead away from intimacy. In any case, for their own safety there were things he must tell them, and he looked soberly at this little group of people who depended upon him. People he had come to care for, he realized. His appreciation for Miss Peters grew hourly and when had that engaging lad snuck into his heart? They’d become a little family these past few days and he was not at all comfortable with the thought that he had put them in harm’s way. They faced him attentively and he keenly felt the loss of the carefree atmosphere of a few moments ago. “I had hoped to spare you any worry,” he said into the silence. “It may be my concern is needless but there is every possibility we will not get away from France in time. The rain holds
more harm then getting a bit wet, if the roads should become difficult and we are delayed.” They all looked alarmed now and he regretted frightening them, but it could not be otherwise. Their freedom may depend on their cooperation. “Napoleon has declared war on England and has issued orders for all Englishmen to be stopped for questioning and quite possibly detained. We are now posing as a French family traveling to visit my wife’s sister, who is ill. You must do exactly what I tell you at all times. Paula, you will not speak and I advise you to talk as little as possible, Adam. We have papers, but they are cursory at best.” He received their agreement with a slight smile, although it was impossible to hide his disquiet. It was a worrisome situation and the varying expressions of concern on the three faces opposite an added burden. He saw them glance at each other, but no one said a word, which surprised him, unaware that not one of them would have cared to question his clipped, concise orders. Instead, Paula initiated a riddle game with Adam and Angel began to read the book that he had bought for her. “Our coach is fitting to a merchant family, but we are too well dressed,” Angel said some time later. “Will we pass through a town where we might purchase other clothing? At the least, a black shawl for me. Adam and Paula will do well enough, I think, dressed as they are.” St. Clair studied her apparel. The gray, wool traveling gown was unadorned but the excellent design and rich material proclaimed it expensive and he knew his fitted coat of blue superfine and gleaming white shirt made much the same statement. She was right in thinking they might draw unwanted attention, dressed as they were. “I meant to avoid any town as much as possible but perhaps something could be contrived,” he replied. He gave her a fleeting smile and lapsed back into his gloomy thoughts. It was not the least of their problems; he was far more concerned with their timetable. The ship was not due to reach the coast for another three days. He was reluctant to stay at an inn, but he couldn’t expect the women to camp out on the beach while waiting for the Lady Gay. Preoccupied with these and other dismal considerations, he didn’t notice the rain was easing. ~* * *~ Angel was more attentive, however, and some of the tension eased from her stiff spine as the first glimmer of sun glinted through the window covering. Perhaps they would make good time after all. The hope was short lived. Even as she relaxed against the squabs, the coach slowed. Before they had rolled to a complete stop, St. Clair jumped down, throwing a tense “Stay here.” over his shoulder. Ignoring his curt command, Angel reopened the door and leaned out. There did not seem to be anyone about and a tree, sprawled across the road ahead, appeared to be blocking the way. “Do be careful, ma’am.” Paula’s warning went unheeded as first Angel and then Adam stepped from the coach. “It’s just a tree down across the road, Paula. Do come out and stretch your legs. We may not have another such opportunity.” Without waiting to see if this wise advice was followed, Angel hurried to where St. Clair and Ned stood scowling at the leafy branches obscuring the
roadway. It was a very large tree. She understood St. Clair’s concern, but it was very hard to be dispirited when there was sun on her face and she could take gulping breaths of the fresh air. “It is quite big, is it not? Shall we be able to go around it?” “Not unless these horses develop wings and fly us over.” St. Clair glared venomously at the obstruction. “Perhaps you and Ned can clear it away,” Angel offered. She had the fleeting idea that St. Clair’s decision to go on without the French groom would prove a mistake, but in all likelihood, even another man would not be much help. Dismissing the issue with a shrug, she looked around her with interest. The trees were very thick along this stretch of road. Maybe she and Paula could slip away for a few minutes. It had been a very long time since their last stop. She was about to ask St. Clair’s permission when she heard a loud curse. It would not be well to distract him just now, she decided. She walked away, so intent on her surroundings that Adam was forced to tug on her skirt to get her attention. “Miss Angel, Miss Angel. May Hickory come out? I will not let him loose, I promise. “What? Oh, Adam, there you are. I am glad you are stretching your legs.” She smiled at him. “Hickory wants to stretch his legs, too.” Angel looked doubtfully at the basket strapped to the coach, then glanced towards the Earl. He and Ned were stalking around the downed tree and paying them no attention at all. “Very well, Adam, but keep along the edge of the road and don’t be more than a few minutes. We have no time for lost ducks today and he will be left behind if he gets away from you,” she warned. “Thank you. I will keep him on a string, I promise.” He dashed away, not hearing her murmur, “I certainly hope so.” She knew who would be blamed if he did not. Beckoning to the disapproving Paula, she led the reluctant maid into an opening in the thick undergrowth. With any luck at all they would not be missed. Angel breathed a sign of relief as they emerged a short time later. Hickory picked sedately at the roadside grass, a stout string around his neck. St. Clair was striding towards them, a puzzled look on his face. “Where have you been?” he demanded. “I told you to stay with the coach.” “We are just exercising our legs a bit,” Angel told him calmly, judging from the stern expression on his face he deemed the situation to be serious. “We will not stray, I promise you. Is there nothing we can do to help? Perhaps if we all worked together we could move the tree?” “I appreciate the offer, but don’t think it possible,” he answered, exchanging a look with Ned as they walked over to join him. “It won’t do, sir, for all the good will of us.” The coachman confirmed St. Clair’s statement with a sorrowful shake of his head. “The only thing to move that tree will be a saw and some stout men to use it. Is there a village nearby where I could go for help?” St. Clair rejected the idea at once. “There is nothing nearby, which is one reason I chose this road. We couldn’t risk drawing that kind of attention to us in any case.”
He looked so distressed and worried that Angel’s heart ached for him. She knew how keenly he took his responsibilities. Why, without all of them dependent on him, he would be on his way already. She stepped forward and laid her hand on his arm. “I think it would not be wise to turn back, sir. If the French authorities are searching for us, as you suspect, might we not meet up with them?” “Turning back is not wise,” he said sharply. “Ned, I’ll have a word with you. Adam can hold the horses for a few minutes.” He moved a short distance away but Angel was not about to be left out of any plans and she instantly joined the two men. “Angel,” St. Clair began, frowning at her. Angel’s jaw set and she looked defiantly at him. “No, I will not be put aside. I have as much at risk as you and I want to be included in any decisions made.” She folded her arms across her breast and waited for him to order her away—although what she would do if he did, she had no idea. But he only gazed down at her for a long moment with narrowed eyes and then nodded with obvious reluctance. “Very well. But only if I have your word you will do exactly as I tell you, even if it is to leave me. It may well be that your safety will depend upon it, Angel. I must have your word.” She stiffened and her hands flew up in a gesture of denial. His expression as stern as ever she’d seen it, he shook his head. “Yes. Would you endanger the others by your failure to follow orders?” Angel bit at her lower lip. Leave him? She was not sure she could, but she could see by his face he was not going to give in on this. “I will do just as you say, Devlin, I promise, although so dreadful a happenstance shall not arise, I am certain. We will be quite safe under your care.” She smiled at him and he took her hands in his. “I hope not. I am sorry, my dear. I have led you to danger, led all of you into a situation not of your making that may result in imprisonment, if not worse.” Angel reached up and touched his cheek. “You have not led me into trouble, Devlin. I chose to be here with you. You will not blame yourself for the actions of others, for I know you would whisk us all back to England in a trice if it was in your power to do so.” “So I would. Unfortunately, it is not that easy.” He squeezed her hand before he released her, stepped back, and looked toward Ned, who was waiting patiently for this discussion to end. “I had hoped it would not be necessary to pass on this information, but….plans don’t always work out.” He shrugged. “Just before we left this morning, la Comtesse’s manservant came to me with a message confirming the rumour I picked up yesterday. Napoleon’s agents know we are headed for the coast and a detachment of soldiers is roaming the countryside in search of us. La Comtesse herself has left the city to seek sanctuary elsewhere.” “The cargo we delivered to her?” Ned questioned, looking as appalled as Angel felt. If the French had the monies it would be a bitter blow. St. Clair’s mouth twisted in a wry smile. “Things are not as bad as that. It was well away even before we left. Speaking of which, we cannot linger here. Ned, you and Adam start unhitching the horses. I would be happier if we had some way to hide the coach, but I can’t see a way to do it.”
Angel stared at the vehicle, her forehead furrowed in concentration. “Can you back it into the woods? Or at least more to the side of the road? There is a sizable ditch there. Perhaps if we take most everything out, we can push it over.” The two men were staring at her as if she had suddenly grown an extra head and tilted her head, puzzled. “What is it? You think it a silly idea, ne ces’t pas? St. Clair traded a look with Ned and both men began to laugh. “No, it isn’t a silly idea, but it’s doubtful the five of us could tip it over, and even if we were successful, what purpose would it serve?” Angel’s lips tightened with annoyance and she lifted her chin. “It might fool anyone searching for us into believing we had an accident and have gone to the nearest village for help,” she said sharply, “which might give us some time to get further along without discovery.” St. Clair narrowed his eyes, glanced at the now sober‐faced Ned, and walked over to study the verge. Silently, he paced off the distance between the coach and the ditch. “How light can we get that vehicle, Ned? Loath as I am to admit it, Mrs. Williams’ idea has merit.” He turned and shook his finger at Angel. “And if it does work, I don’t want to hear a single ‘I told you so’. His grin took any possible sting from the words and Angel closed the short distance between them and smiled mischievously at him. “I would not dare, Mr. Williams.” “That I take leave to doubt,” he replied in a voice so skeptical she had to laugh. “I will be very good, I promise. Now what is to be done next?” “The first thing it to get those horses unhitched, and then we will make plans.” St. Clair removed his coat and went to help Ned, who was already busy removing the lead horse’s harness, while Angel beckoned to Paula. “We will need to gather up some things from the coach, Paula, since we cannot continue on with it. As soon the men finish with the horses, Mr. Williams will tell us what we can take.” Removing the horses from the traces was not a quick procedure, Angel realized, as she watched impatiently while one by one the animals were freed. The longer they stayed here the more dangerous it was and her stomach was roiling with nerves by the time they could begin deciding how they were going to go on. “The best way to proceed would be to ride, but I don’t know whether it is possible,” St. Clair began, and then waved a hand toward Ned. “You’ve been working with those animals. What do you think?” Ned pursed his lips in concentration as he mulled it over, and then nodded slowly and said, “I’m thinking it could be done, sir, with some planning. These horses are biddable and will not object to riders if treated well. The lack of saddles does pose a problem but if no one is opposed to riding bareback, we could use the reins from the harness. “The bigger problem as I see it will be the lack of shelter tonight. That will be hard on the ladies, but I believe them up to it.” Adam, who was almost quivering with excitement, chimed in next with the enthusiasm of a young boy on the verge of adventure. “We could make a saddle pad, sir, as the Indians do, from some of the clothes. We would need to leave most of it behind anyway, wouldn’t we? I’ve ridden bareback before. I could ride with Miss Peters.”
The boy’s excited speech broke the air of tension among the adults and the Earl’s stern expression eased somewhat. “It won’t be an easy journey, or a comfortable one, but there is little choice at this point. We will not be able to put up at an inn and have very little food,” he cautioned them. “We will contrive, sir,” Angel said, and smiled as cheerfully as she could. They would all be better off without doubt to weigh them down. “Hurrah!” Adam’s whoop of delight, worthy of any Indian war cry, again broke the tension and they all laughed at the sight of him jumping up and down with enthusiasm. “It will be capital, sir. What shall we do first?” “See what you and Ned can do to use some of the harness to strap on the pads we will make up. There are a few blankets on hand and the ladies can sacrifice some of their skirts as well.” Paula stepped forward at this. “I can do that, sir. I’m handy with a needle and we have enough thread. Perhaps Adam could give me some idea of how large they should be?” Adam nodded, and the pair walked away, deep in discussion of this vital task. “And my assignment, sir?” Angel asked, her head tilted in question. She tucked her arm under his and beamed at him, almost skipping by his side as they also walked toward the coach. “You, my little hellion, will take a tally of whatever foodstuffs we have on hand and take everything usable from the coach. I am going to look at the map and try to find an alternate route to the coast.” He glanced at the coach. “Unfortunately we can take very little with us. Tell everyone that if there is any small item they want to remove it now.” He frowned, but more in worry than displeasure, Angel guessed, and then he added softly, “Try to hurry the others. We need to go on as quickly as possible.” Angel’s smile faded at this reminder of danger but said in as confident a tone as she could manage, “All will be well, Devlin. You will have us at the coast in no time, Captain Carlisle will have the ship on hand, and we will be quite safe.” St. Clair’s smile was grim and Angel shivered in spite of her attempt at optimism. He carried too much responsibility on those broad shoulders and she prayed this would soon be over and they would be safely returned to England.
Chapter Fourteen England, May 1803 For once it was not raining in England, although neither Robert Entremont, nor the men he had summoned had any appreciation of the fair weather. He surveyed the three men arranged around the small garden behind the obscure tavern he had designated as a meeting place. “It appears you are all equally incompetent,” he said with deceptive mildness. The Jervey brothers looked somewhat the worse for wear, he noticed their never pristine clothing more stained than usual, and adorned with some large tears here and there. Jed’s face wore its usual expression of ingratiating defensiveness and Jake’s hangdog look told its own story of failure. Radell lounged against the stonewall enclosing the yard, his expression one of utter boredom, but there was a wary look in the blood‐shot eyes, Entremont observed with satisfaction and raked him with a look that brought an angry colour to the man’s face. “You have news for me, gentlemen?” le Compté questioned with a lift of one eyebrow. “Good news, perhaps?” “Naw, gov’ner, things is just the same as I put in that message,” Jed replied in a rush. “There is not a whisper to be had about the girl. Must be a goner, that’s what we think, else there’d be all kinds of gossip around.” “We tramped all over those woods and made the rounds of every public house in twenty miles; bound to be a goner,” Jake chimed in, nodding his head furiously. “Got to be.” “Is that so? Radell? Is that your opinion as well?” “I don’t know if it is the case or not. I do know there is not even the slightest hint anyone answering to her description has been seen or heard of in that part of the country,” Radell answered with a shrug. “And St. Clair? Have you information about him, at least?” Entremont questioned, his anger growing at this display of insolence. Seemingly alerted by the terse tone of the Frenchman’s voice, Radell straightened and made an effort to at least appear attentive. “He boarded the ship in Portsmouth, as you expected, if that’s what you want to know.” “Alone?” “His driver was with him, and his new bride,” Radell replied with a look of surprise at the question. “At least that is what I was told by.…” He paused and looked warily at the Compté. “By your friend.” “Indeed,” Entremont drawled, his eyes narrowed in concentration. There had been a hint, a breath of scandal about that marriage. It would bear more investigation, but in the meantime…. He turned and pinned the two brothers with an icy look. “It is to be hoped you are correct in your surmise the girl is a ‘goner’ as you so colourfully phrase it. Get into Town, now,” he ordered. “You have already made your presence too apparent in the countryside. I will be in touch when I need you.”
Looking surprised and relieved to escape so easily, Jake and Jed traded a puzzled look and hurried out through the gate. The sound of horses could be heard minutes later and Entremont paused for a moment. Yet another loose end to tidy up. Perhaps they should be ‘persuaded’ to return to sea. Any number of press gangs would be glad to have them. Entremont dismissed the obviously surprised Englishman just as abruptly and smiled grimly at his look of relief. He should enjoy it while he could. No, Entremont had plans for that weak Englishman and no doubt they would not be to his liking. Soon, now, very soon, he could leave for France.
Chapter Fifteen France, 1803 Thank the fates the weather had held. St. Clair looked up at the sinking sun tinting the few clouds pink. They had perhaps an hour before sunset. It would be wise to find a place to set up some kind of camp while it was still light. It appeared even the irrepressible Adam was wearing down, he realized, seeing the slump in the boy’s shoulders. Paula appeared to be almost asleep on the plodding horse, although her hands kept a tight grip on Adam, who was seated in front of her. The ladies had proved very resourceful in fashioning divided skirts from their dresses, for riding sidesaddle under these conditions was impractical, if not downright impossible. He called out to Angel, who had the task of keeping a watchful eye on Adam and Paula, and rode up beside her. She looked tired, but had a quick smile for him. “We will be stopping soon, before it gets dark. Can you go on a little more if need be? I’m going to ride ahead to look for a good place to spend the night.” “I can, but I don’t think Adam and Paula will be able to go much farther. They are both at the end of their strength.” She glanced at the horse ahead, concern in her eyes “It won’t be much longer, I hope. I’ll take Adam up with me, if you can lead their horse a short distance?” Angel nodded agreement and St. Clair caught up to the pair, lifted the half‐ dozing boy onto his horse, and tossed the makeshift reins over to Angel. “Hold on to the strap, Miss Peters, and Angel will guide the horse. Just a few more minutes,” he assured her. Her face was pale with fatigue, but she smiled wanly and sat up straight. “Ned will stay with you and Paula. Keep up as best you can,” he instructed, and then urged his horse forward. He appraised the land carefully as he rode, dismissing the open fields on one side and concentrating on the thin woodland that ran along the other. He was rewarded within a few minutes by a break in the underbrush, and he guided the horse onto a fairly wide track leading into the woods. It looked as if wagons or carts had been driven along it at some time for ruts scored the ground. Not recently, however, which precluded the idea he would encounter anyone. The track ended shortly at a small clearing where stacked logs explained the use of it. St. Clair dismounted, then lifted Adam and deposited him on a nearby tree stump, unstrapped Hickory’s basket and handed it to the exhausted youngster. “Rest a bit, Adam, while I take a look around.” St. Clair tossed a ‘good lad’ over his shoulder as he strode away. Adam was a fine youngster any man would be proud to call son. Kenneth Wolfe, if he was still amongst the living, would be frantic with worry by now. St. Clair knew how he would feel knowing his son was alone in a foreign country. Well, he would see that Adam was well taken care of, whatever the outcome. A branch slapping across his face brought his attention swiftly back to his purpose in wandering through unfamiliar woods. He tried to recall his map of the area as he wove through the trees. He was sure there had been a small river or stream running close to this road and they needed the water for both the weary horses and their riders. There, just ahead,
a lightening of the gloom caught his eye. The growth was thinner here and he quickened his pace. A few steps further and a small stream appeared, gurgling swiftly across a rocky bottom. He had remembered correctly. Feeling absurdly proud of it, he made his way back to the clearing, bending branches along the way to mark the path. It would be tight in places for the horses, but would be accessible enough. It would need to be, for they had no way of bringing more than a pot of water to the camp. He had been able to purchase some food, a single cooking pot, and one blanket in a small town without rousing undue interest. It was fortunate for them that a market of sorts was set up in the town square, with more than one outsider browsing the stalls. The others had waited for him some distance away and because he did not care to ride into town, he had been constrained in what he could carry away. It would do, he decided, as he stepped into the clearing and surveyed the scene in front of him. The others had caught up, stripped the horses of the blanket ‘saddles’, and spread them out near the fire Ned and Adam coaxed into life. Angel and Paula were engaged in laying out what food they had and lamenting the lack of water. “For if we had water, ma’am, we could make a broth of sorts with these greens and that bit of chicken,” Paula told Angel. She shook her head sadly. “It would be good to have a sip of something hot.” “I agree, Miss Peters,” the Earl interrupted with a wide smile as he walked over to join them. “So you will be pleased to hear there is water nearby, and I will fill your pot for you when Ned and I take the horses to drink, which we will do now, if you will help Adam mind the fire.” He looked around with approval. “You have done wonders here, ladies.” Paula bridled with pleasure at the praise and Angel beamed at him. “Merci, Monsieur. We will be most comfortable here. And oh, Mr. Williams….” She reached up to touch his cheek. “It is very nice to be on the ground.” St. Clair chuckled as he caught her hand and kissed it. “Very nice, indeed, my dear,” he agreed. He smiled down at her, suddenly light at heart. Her hair tumbled in a wild mass around her shoulders and there was a smudge of soot on one cheek. She looked adorable, and he had never wanted her more than at just this moment. The humour kindled into desire and her cheeks grew rosy under his heated gaze, a slow, welcoming smile curving her lips in unconscious response. She was trembling in his arms, scarcely breathing as he wiped away the dirt on her face with one hand, while the other slid under her hair. He gathered her into his arms and covered her mouth with his. It was beyond him to resist, to remain the gentleman. Her mouth was so warm and soft and he reveled in the pleasure of it, lingering longer than he’d meant to do, for he had not quite forgotten where they were. He raised his head, licked her lips with his tongue, and laughed at the surprised look in her eyes. “Oh, yes, my dear. Very nice indeed.” Giving in to temptation once more, he gave her a swift kiss, stepped back and spun her around. Gently he pushed her towards the fire, where Paula and Adam had paused in their activities to look curiously at them. “Get your pot, Angel. Ned, I need help with the horses. It will soon be fully dark and I prefer not to be wandering through these woods without a light. Adam, you stay with the ladies.” He walked away, not waiting for an answer from either Ned or Angel. The expression
of stunned delight on Angel’s face kindled an almost irresistible desire to carry her into the woods and smother her with kisses from head to foot. He would do well to keep some distance between them. An hour later, the Earl looked around at his companions with contented amazement. They had worked together to produce a somewhat meager but adequate meal from the supplies he had managed to acquire. Now everyone rested beside the dying fire, happy to have this opportunity to relax in relative safety. Everyone was exhausted, and no wonder. They had all worked like demons, getting the coach off the road and outfitting the horses with makeshift tackle, and then riding — most uncomfortably, too — all the afternoon. Not a grumble among them, and he was conscious of a feeling of pride in his temporary family. Confound it, he would bring them all safely out of France if it was the last thing he ever did. He rose reluctantly and signaled to Ned to join him. They walked aside, out of earshot of the others, for supplies were not the only things he had acquired in the town. A troop of French soldiers had passed through earlier in the day, setting the townsfolk abuzz with the news that they were searching for an English couple accompanied by a boy and coachman. No mention had been made of a maidservant. It appeared Miss Peters was not known to be with them. It was one point in their favor. It might become necessary to split their party somewhat, for the French would not be looking for two women, especially one who to all appearances was French. The soldiers had not yet found the coach, but it would happen soon enough if they continued to sweep through this area. In a low voice, St. Clair told Ned what he had learned. The two men spent some time in discussing the route for the next day, trying to foresee possible trouble they might run into and making plans to deal with any confrontation. “One more day, Ned, and we will be in the clear. We should make the coast well before dark, even if we go at the same slow pace we did today. I’m praying Carlisle will be at the rendezvous early, but we can’t count on it, so be thinking of a place to wait well out of sight, and of what to do with these horses.” He gestured towards them with a quick grin. “They may be the worse ride we have ever had the misfortune to experience, but they have been a sight better than I expected and deserve to be well treated. Nor do I want them wandering about and drawing unwanted attention.” Ned turned his head toward the horses dozing nearby and laughed. “Almost makes a man feel shank’s mare might be a better way of transportation, don’t it, sir?” The two men exchanged a smile and turned to join the others. Paula and Adam were stretched out beside the fire, wrapped up in the blankets and most likely asleep, the Earl guessed. Angel sat nearby on one of the stumps that dotted the clearing, a cloak around her shoulders. She had been watching them, he realized, seeing the questioning look on her face, and he walked over to sit beside her. “Is aught amiss, Devlin?” she whispered, her eyes searching his face in the dim light. “No, nothing is wrong.” He put his arm around her. “You should try to sleep. Tomorrow will be another long day.” He stroked her head, resting against his chest, and heard her sigh with pleasure.
“I could not, Devlin, when you were not close, and I thought perhaps you were troubled. You should also try to rest,” she said in a sleepy voice and snuggled against him. The Earl gazed down at her, watching as her eyes closed and the anxious look faded from her face. Her skin appeared to glow in the faint light from the fire and the cloud of dark hair under his hand gleamed almost red at times. He would not be able to let her go once they were back in England. No matter who she was or where she came from, he would have her as his bride. What his family would say he could only imagine. He trusted his instincts were right and his angel was the lady he believed her to be. He gathered her into his arms and carried her to an unoccupied collection of clothing laid out near Paula and Adam. It would do for both of them, he decided, and took up the one remaining blanket and settled beside her. He suspected he would be getting very little sleep with her warm, nicely rounded body cuddled up to him, but it would be warmer than sleeping alone. St. Clair did sleep, better than he’d anticipated, though his eyes opened at the first touch of daylight filtering though the trees. Stifling a groan, he got to his feet and stretched in hopes of alleviating some of the stiffness from his limbs. He was getting too old for sleeping on the ground. He gazed around the campsite. Ned was already up and tending to the horses, though the others were still sleeping. Well, let them rest as long as possible. Stooping, he tucked the blanket around Angel’s shoulders, resisting the temptation to kiss the pert little nose poking out of the covers. By gad, he was getting addle pated over the woman. Grimacing at his unruly thoughts, he added a few small branches to the still smoldering ashes and waited until they had caught fire before he followed Ned to the stream with the two remaining horses. ~* * *~ Angel was not quite asleep, though she had no inclination to leave her warm nest and face another day on horseback. There was much to be said for having a saddle under one, she mused, rubbing her derriere gingerly. Lud, her entire body was sore, although she knew some of the discomfort came from sleeping on the ground. With Devlin. She had slept snuggled up to Devlin. She rolled onto her back and hugged herself with joy. It had been so wonderful, having his warm, comforting body pressed against her. It was almost as if they really were a married couple. As perhaps they would be someday, she allowed herself to imagine, more determined than ever to make him love her. For he had liked it too, she felt sure, remembering how he had stroked her hair and held her so tightly. He wanted her. She was not so naive she did not recognize desire in a man’s eyes. Maybe he would come to care for her as she did him. Oh, how she hoped it would happen. She loved him, mercurial moods, quick temper and all. He was the most interesting man she had ever known. She would not trap him into marriage, however, for she knew he would offer for her in a flash if he believed his honour demanded it. Although how she was to resist any future caresses, she had no idea. Sighing, she sat up, the blanket wrapped tightly around her to ward off the morning chill. Oh, wonderful. Someone had stirred up the fire. They could have some tea with the remaining bread and cheese.
She looked over at the two sleepyheads cocooned yet in the blankets and smiled. Adam, she knew, was a formidable sleeper, like most young boys, but she would not have expected Paula to sleep so long and well. Poor thing, she was not accustomed to riding under any conditions, let alone being perched on the broad back of a carriage horse for hours. Angel scrambled awkwardly to her feet, every limb aching and stiff. She yawned hugely, allowed the blanket to fall to the ground and waved her arms in an effort to loosen her muscles. “Are you pretending to be a windmill, Miss Angel?” Adam asked, awakened by her movements. “May I do it too?” He jumped up with all the agility of an active young male and Angel glared at him in envy. “No, I am not pretending to be a windmill, you little fiend, as you very well know.” Laughing, she caught him in her arms and proceeded to tickle him mercilessly. “Stop, stop,” he cried, giggling. “I won't say another thing, I promise.” Grinning madly at each other they sank to the ground together, weak with laughter. “Madam?” Paula sat up, the astonished look on her face setting them off again. “I am sorry we woke you, Paula. I was just teaching this young cawker not to tease his elders.” Angel ruffled the boy's thick hair affectionately. Unabashed, he grinned at both of them. “Miss Angel was acting very strangely, Miss Peters,” he joked, prudently rolling away from Angel and leaping to his feet. “Why, you little rascal.” Angel lunged at him in mock anger and he scampered away. “I think I will go to look for Ned,” he called back to her and disappeared into the woods. She helped Paula to her feet. “I am sorry we woke you in such a way, but it is time to be up and about. The men will be back with the horses in a few minutes and we need to be ready to leave soon after.” Paula winced at the mention of more riding, but managed a faint smile for her mistress. “Better to wake with laughter than sorrow, ma'am. I will do well enough, once I get to moving around some.” She glanced at the fire. “There is enough tea left to give us all a taste of something hot. I’ll get the pot on and be about turning these beds back into saddles, if you can call them that.” In companionable silence, the two women began to sort through the piles of blankets and clothing and had made good progress by the time the others returned with the horses. All of them were full of praise to find so much completed and very pleased to be presented with a mug of hot tea, weak as it was. “Ladies, you are a wonder,” St. Clair pronounced, sipping the hot liquid. Like them all, his blond hair was in disarray and his clothes rumpled and dirty. In Angel’s eyes, he looked wonderful and she beamed at him. “Merci, monsieur. We have been working very hard, so we could be ready to leave whenever you wish.” He held up his mug in salute and smiled, but his sober reply could not but dampen their spirits. "Which I am sorry to tell you is right now. We have many miles to cover and need to reach the coast while we still have daylight to see our way.” Something in his expression made Angel feel he was not telling them the whole, but she trusted his judgment and made no comment other than a brisk “trés bien”. He would bring
them about, she was confident, and if the only aid she could give him was to see all was in order and the preparations completed, then that is just what she would do.
Chapter Sixteen “Isn’t this wonderful, Miss Angel?” The huge smile on Adam’s dust‐streaked face left no doubt as to the boy’s feelings about this adventure — he was obviously having the time of his life. Angel glanced at him and summoned an ‘umm’ in agreement. “I just wish my father were here. He would like it, too. He used to take me exploring when we lived in America. There are some mighty big forests there, and once we met up with some trappers taking their furs into the city. Boy, did they have some tales to tell.” “Did they, Adam? I’m sure it was very exciting. You must tell me some of their stories someday,” she replied, in what she hoped was an interested manner. Her natural ebullience had deserted her some time ago. She was dirty, hungry and hot, a blister was forming on her heel, and while no lady would admit to such a thing, the chaffing on the inside of her legs was a constant irritant. Too, St. Clair had assured them they would reach the ship that very night and she felt their time together slipping away. Once amongst others they could no longer enjoy the intimacies of the past days. She could no longer keep secret her memories’ return, and they would be separated, a future she found quite depressing. Of course, he might be so angry she had not told him of her identity, he may wish never to see her again. She bit her lips, refusing to give in to a strong urge to sink down onto the dusty road and weep. Something of her thoughts was more apparent then desired, however, and Adam looked at her with a puzzled expression. “Are you all right, Miss Angel?” he asked in a worried voice. “Shall I get Mr. Williams for you? If you are tired, I will lead your horse for you.” “I am a little tired, Adam, but am fine,” she said. The last thing she wanted was Devlin’s discerning eye on her. “But I think I will ride again, if you will give me a leg up.” He was just strong enough for this, for she was light and agile, and it was accomplished with a minimum of fuss, although she took a quick look to make sure St. Clair, who rode some distance ahead, was not paying her any attention. Ned brought up the rear of the little procession; they were the cheese, she thought with a faint smile, and not for the first time. Adam returned her smile with a grin of his own. “I could tell you a tale right now, if you like,” he offered. “Miss Peters might like it, too.” He looked up at the maid with a shy smile. “I would very much like to hear one of your America tales, Adam,” Miss Peters told him from her perch on the broad‐backed horse. Angel smiled gratefully at her. It was easy to see Paula was fond of the boy, which was not surprising. He was bright and well mannered, with an engaging personality that couldn’t help but appeal. Angel had great hopes Paula would accept a position with her. The young woman had confided her reluctance to return to her mother’s house and the likelihood of maintaining ties with Adam might be another incentive. Of course, she could do nothing until she disclosed her identity. Which she needed to do very soon, and there she was again, back to the root of her misery. The Earl’s rapid approach was a welcome interruption and Angel straightened her shoulders in an attempt to appear at least somewhat alert. “What is it, Mr. Williams? You are
smiling, so it must not be more bad news.” They had several times been forced to hide, much to Adam’s delight, from the troops of French soldiers scouring the countryside. “Nothing wrong, folks,” he replied with a grin. “Good news, in fact. We are right where we need to be and earlier than I had dared hope. There is a fenced field not far from here, Ned, where we can leave the horses. From here, we will go across country on foot. It can be no more than five miles. A good way, but not too lengthy a walk, and the terrain does not appear to be too difficult. We will do better hidden close to the shore while we wait for the ship then to continue to traverse the roads.” His sharp gaze swept over them and Angel saw his mouth tighten. It was impossible to hide her fatigue and discomfort and the slump of Paula’s shoulders told its own story. He ignored it, however, as Angel had expected and prayed he would. “Ladies? Adam? Are you up for one last push?” he challenged. “Of course,” they all cried, and Adam gave a whoop of delight. Paula and Angel exchanged a look that spoke of their determination to finish this journey, on foot or any other way. St. Clair nodded, as if he expected nothing else, reached down to give Adam a boost up onto his horse and in a matter of minutes they reached a small pasture. Angel could see the rooftop of a farmhouse in the distance. Some farmer would be in for a welcome surprise when he next visited his fields. She slid from her horse and began to remove the makeshift saddle and harness. These animals had served them well and she gave her placid mount a fond pat. The farmer’s wife was also in for a treat, she surmised as she added her blanket and the skirt that had served as her saddle to the neat pile the others had already made. She kept only her cloak and the length of linen she had refused to abandon along the way. Although St. Clair had more than once quizzed her about it, she felt it would someday come in handy. Angel grimaced and glanced at her foot. No doubt after she walked another five miles in these shoes, she would be the one to need it. She touched the seam in her dress where the list was hidden, as she had done repeatedly during the past few days. Reassured by the familiar crackle, she watched St. Clair and Ned roll their belongings into one of the blankets and hide them in some scrubby bushes growing along the fence. “For who knows what message this lot would bring to those interested in our activities,” St. Clair commented, “and we can’t depend on the owner of this land to keep the sudden acquisition of four horses quiet.” “What of the livery?” Angel asked, feeling a bit guilty about having virtually stolen the horses. The others looked at him as well, for they had all had the same thought at sometime or the other. “I will arrange for a draft to be sent to the owner,” he assured them. “An anonymous draft,” he added with a smile before he shouldered the small bag holding the water bottle and several mugs. He vaulted over the fence and turned to help Angel, while Ned and Adam assisted Miss Peters. “You look a proper ragamuffin, love,” he drawled, holding her close for just a moment. She leaned against him, gathering strength from the heat of his strong body.
“I smell like one, I am sure,” she answered with a little chuckle. “I can’t say you are in any better state, sir.” She reached up to rub her fingers against his stubbly chin. His brows went up in feigned surprise. “Why, this is the latest fashion, I’ll have you know. They call it ‘la naturale’.” “Do they indeed? ‘Tis wondrous becoming,” she teased, patting his cheek before freeing herself from his arms. Adam and Paula joined in their laughter, while Ned scratched at his own whiskers. “And wondrous itchy,” he added in a mournful voice, a rueful smile on his weathered face. “Well said, my friend.” St. Clair gave him a clap on the shoulders, motioned to Adam to walk behind him, and led them across the dusty lane and onto the uncultivated field. “You expect we can reach the coast before dark, sir?” Ned asked in a low voice. Angel had wondered about that as well. The terrain was rough and not something she wanted to navigate after dusk. Ignoring the painful blister that hindered her every step, she hurried to get closer to the two men, anxious to hear the answer. St. Clair squinted into the sun and shrugged. “We should just about make it. Then supposing I can successfully locate the area where the ship awaits, find some dry wood to light for a signal, and not attract attention from anyone else but Carlisle, we’ll be home free.” His expression tight with worry, he added, “There are too many variables, Ned, to be sure of anything at this point. We’ll do the best we can and pray things go well.” “It will go well, I’m sure,” Angel panted, breathless from the brisk pace. St. Clair looked down at her, stopped abruptly and frowned. “Gad, Angel, you look like a lobster at the boil. You will never make the coast if you go on like that.” Indignant, Angel blew out a sharp breath. “I will make the coast, sir, no matter how fast you wish to go, but perhaps if you moderated your walk somewhat, I would not look like a lobster!” St. Clair’s grin was beyond annoying. Angel fisted her hands against her hips and glared at him. Chuckling, he laid his finger across her lips. “No need to say another word, love. I am a beast to drive you so.” He glanced back at Adam and Miss Peters, straggling up behind them. “All of you, it seems, as you all appear lobster‐like in varying degrees. Rest a bit.” Angel sniffed, but somewhat mollified, she sank down onto the sandy ground. “Just for a minute. I know you are anxious to get on.” St. Clair crouched in front of her and smiled. “Take five or ten, Angel.” He brushed the damp strands of hair from her face. “We can afford a few minutes delay.” He stood and looked over at Ned. “Stay with them, Ned. I’ll go on and find someplace to lie up while we wait.” Angel waited until he disappeared over the next rise to remove her shoe and groaned with relief. She eased her stocking from her foot to expose a bleeding, raw area on her heel that made Paula gasp. “Oh, ma’am, that looks quite nasty. You should never have walked so far with it. You won’t be able to go on.” She knelt down to look at the sore, taking Angel’s foot gingerly into her hand. “Nonsense, of course I will go on,” Angel retorted, “but not wearing this shoe. We can bandage the whole foot. If we can make it thick enough to walk upon, it will do well enough. I
knew I would be glad of my linen.” She took the material from her pocket and waved it triumphantly. “Ned, let me have your water bottle, please, and perhaps you can find something to bind it up.” Paula took one look at her set face and made no comment, setting about the task with her usual competency. She poured water over the blister and wrapped the linen around the small foot until it resembled a miniature mummy. Adam obligingly donated a length of string he had in his pocket, in the way of young boys, and Ned turned over his rather grimy but intact kerchief. In a very short time Angel was upright and taking small steps that grew faster as she realized that while somewhat awkward, it was much less painful than when she was wearing a shoe. “It is not much farther,” Adam encouraged her, clinging to her hand. “Just to those hills over there.” Angel scanned the landscape, wondering how far ahead the Earl was by now. She was sure he would not allow too much distance to grow between them, but nevertheless, she trudged along as fast as she could. She would not slow him down again. ~* * *~ St. Clair had no intention of allowing much distance between them. He paused at the top of the rise and looked back to make sure they were still in sight. Perhaps a bit further away than he wished but Ned would keep them going at the fastest pace possible. He turned, slipped and slid down the side of the hill and started up the next. It was slow going, and the sudden shadow he caught from the corner of his eye made him all the more cautious. He crept along, trying to take cover among the grasses and gnarled shrubs growing tenaciously in the sand. Damnation. It would be rotten luck, for someone to be in this remote area just now. He eased up to the top and peered over cautiously. No sign of anyone, but a heartfelt relief to see the ocean below, even if there was no ship to be seen in the failing light. Disheartened, he began working his way backwards down the hill and was totally unprepared to hear the unmistakable sound of a pistol being cocked just as a heavily booted foot landed firmly in the middle of his back. “Looking for me?” a deep, rough voice questioned, while St. Clair struggled to regain his breath, cursing at his carelessness. “Turn over slowly, mister, and keep your hands well in sight,” the voice commanded and the pressure eased. St. Clair rolled over slowly and studied his captor’s face intently. They stared at each other for a long moment. Whatever his assailant saw, it was enough to cause him to lower the pistol. Nonetheless, there was a faint question in his voice when he spoke. “St. Clair, I presume? Captain Carlisle sent me to find you and your wife,” the stranger said, his eyes watchful. A careful man, St. Clair noted with approval. He stood and looked intently at the man before answering. “I am St. Clair. And you are? No offense intended, but I mistrust coincidence and having you find me by mere chance is a mite hard to swallow.” He was aware of time passing and knew the others would soon appear. The man didn’t look the type to
maim and rob — in fact, he had a solid, dependable look about him — but it didn’t mean he was trustworthy, even if he did mention Carlisle. The stranger tucked the pistol away in his jacket and smiled slightly, meeting St. Clair’s gaze straightly. “Can’t blame you for being careful. I am Ken Wolfe, and it’s a bit more than chance that led me here. I’ve been roaming this section of the coast for the past few days, ever since Carlisle put me ashore.” “The devil you are!” St. Clair grinned and held out his hand. “The Fates must have had a hand in this. Mister, you are a sight for sore eyes. I admit I had serious doubts about finding the right location of this rendezvous.” He shook his head, not quite ready to believe what his eyes told him, but now that he knew to look he could see Wolfe’s resemblance to his son. “How it should come about I cannot fathom, but I believe I have someone with me who may be of interest to you. A youngster who looks remarkably like his father.” Hope flared in Wolfe’s eyes. “Adam? Is his name Adam?” “Indeed it is, Wolfe, and very glad he will be to see you alive and well. Turn around and look below,” St. Clair stated with a wave of his hands, but his words fell into the empty air. Wolfe turned and scrambled through the sand towards his son. St. Clair chuckled, still amazed at this happenstance. He looked forward to hearing where and how Carlisle had found Wolfe and gotten him involved. St. Clair made his way to the bottom of the dune and by the time he reached the others, Adam was gathered in his father’s arms, Angel and Paula were crying with joy, and Ned’s face was creased with smiles. “Oh, Mr. Williams, is it not wonderful? However did he come to be here? Was he searching for Adam, and why here? Oh, it is too good to be true,” cried Angel, laughing and weeping together as she limped toward him. “What the devil have you done to yourself? I leave you for fifteen minutes and you find trouble,” he said roughly as he lifted her into his arms. “A blister, nothing more.” “A mighty big one, judging by that bandage.” His eyes narrowed, searching her face. She gave him a mischievous smile and a giggle escaped her. “I will have you know this is the very latest fashion in shoes, sir. Quite á la mode, in fact.” “Baggage.” He dropped a kiss on her nose and set her on her feet, keeping a firm hold on her arm as he surveyed the scene around him. Paula and Ned had taken advantage of this interval to rest their weary legs and sat on the sand listening to Adam’s rapid recitation of the adventures that had led them here. Disturbed by the hard jolt to the ground when Adam had discarded his basket to run to his father, Hickory was complaining vociferously, and Wolfe looked hard‐pressed to comprehend what was going on. Taking pity on the man, and anxious to move on, St. Clair laid a hand on Adam’s shoulder. “Easy there, lad. You’ll have plenty of time on the ship for your tales. Best tend to that curst, ah, to Hickory before he bursts.” “Hickory? You’ve hauled that duck with you?” St. Clair smiled at the amazement in Wolfe’s voice. “I did, and dammed inconvenient it was, I can tell you.”
The look of amazement on Wolfe’s face was reward enough for dragging the duck along and St. Clair grinned. “There was nothing for it, I’m afraid. No duck, no Adam.” “I’m indebted to you, sir,” Wolfe said roughly, gratitude replacing the amazement and St. Clair tactfully turned his attention to his other charges. “On your feet, folks.” He reached out to help Paula rise. “Let’s be on our way. Wolfe, Adam.” Once sure of their attention, he turned and began the slow climb to the top of the rise, keeping a tight grip on Angel’s hand. He was not about to let her out of his sight again. The day was fading and they needed to stay close together. Wolfe was quick to catch up, half dragging Adam along with him. “We are to flash a light at midnight to let them know we are here,” Wolfe explained. “The signal is three blinks from both sides. Once they have that, a boat will pick us up. The cove isn’t far. I’ve been staying somewhat away from it in case someone happened by. The Captain has been beating up and down the coast for the past twenty‐four hours, in case you were able to reach here earlier than planned.” He guided them to a sheltered area on the beach. Unconsciously, they stepped closer together when they reached the small strip of sand, although it was not entirely dark. The white sand glimmered faintly, adding to the reflection of light coming off the white caps cresting on the water. There was an eerie ambiance to the scene and St. Clair wrapped his arms around Angel and held her close. They would have these few minutes at least before the return to propriety and convention.
Chapter Seventeen There were no more surprises. The agreed upon signals worked perfectly, the longboat arrived soon after, and one by one they splashed through the water to where the anxious seamen waited to help them. Angel blinked back tears as St. Clair lifted her into the arms one of the waiting crewman. Her grand adventure was over. She settled miserably onto a seat in the bow of the boat. She was dirty, cold, and hungry, and she wanted Devlin close to her and not busy conversing with the crewmen. The climb up a rope ladder to the deck of the Lady Gay was an ordeal, and only the knowledge that the Earl followed directly below her kept her moving until the Captain could catch her hands and lift her over the rail. “Welcome aboard,” Carlisle said in a low voice. “It’s quite a relief to see you all safe and sound. More or less,” he added when she looked down at her disheveled and dirty dress. “Rather less,” she said dryly, but managed a smile for him. They owed him a great deal, after all. He turned his attention to his other passengers and Angel stood shivering in the night air until all her friends had made it safely on deck and had been led away by one of the crew. Except for her, she thought morosely, and since she had no idea of where to go, and St. Clair and the Captain were engrossed in conversation, Angel plopped down on a packing crate to wait. She was too tired to even work up any annoyance at being ignored, although not weary enough to contain a shriek when she was suddenly scooped from her perch into St. Clair’s embrace and carried willy‐nilly down the passageway. “You fiend! Put me down this instant.” He laughed in her ear, opened the door of a tiny cabin with his foot and dropped her on the only table. “There, now you’re down.” “What on earth are you about? I thought I was to bunk with Paula.” She eyed him with suspicion when he began to unwind the makeshift bandage from her foot. “I don’t suppose this means you will allow me to stay with you tonight.” Chuckling, he lifted his head to send her a quick, suggestive smile that sent a flame of heat through her body. “You suppose correctly, love. Much as I would like to join you in that bunk over there, I’ll not put Carlisle out of both cabins. I will take you to Paula in a few minutes. First, I want to see to your blister.” His hands were gentle as he cleaned her heel with a dampened cloth, ignoring her flinch as the cold water touched her skin. “Paula could see to it, surely,” she protested and clutched his shoulders with both hands. “Of course she could. But this gives us an excuse for a few minutes of privacy.” He rewrapped her foot with a dry piece of cloth and swung her to the floor. “Take off your gown, Angel. Your skirt is soaking wet and you will be much more comfortable sleeping in one of Carlisle’s shirts. The cabin boy will brush the worst of the dirt off and see that it is dried by morning.” Angel stepped back a little, her eyes narrowed. She mistrusted that bland look. No doubt he was up to something. “Take off my dress? I don’t think it would be very proper, but if you
insist….” She began to unfasten the buttons. “I’m sure I will be more comfortable out of this gown.” “Angel,” he warned with a frown and dropped a blanket over her shoulders. “I will also be more at ease if you tell me the real reason you wanted us to be alone.” Angel clutched the ends of the blanket together with one hand and wiggled the gown from her shoulders before stepping forward to lean against him. “That is not the reason, although I wish it were.” He grasped her by the waist and lifted her out of the wet garment before sitting her on the table and tucking the blanket more snuggly around her. “What do you want, Devlin?” Angel asked with a resigned sigh, knowing she would not be able to persuade him otherwise, and in truth too exhausted to continue to tease him. He looked at her in amazement. “I want the list, Angel. You do remember?” There was more than a hint of sarcasm in his voice and she winced, biting her lower lip. She had forgotten all about it. There had been so much else going on and the meeting with the Frenchwoman seemed so long ago. “Oh, that,” she replied with a shrug, embarrassed at this lapse of memory, but really, she had other things on her mind. “It is just there, on the floor. Sewn into the waistband of my gown. It did not get wet, Devlin,” she hastened to assure him, seeing the exasperation on his face. “Thank you.” He picked up the gown and shook it out. “If you will show me exactly where it is, I will do my best not to damage your dress, although it would be no loss. However, you will need to wear it again, I’m sorry to say.” He removed a small knife from a shelf by the bunk and began picking apart the seam Angel indicated. “I would have kept it quite safe, Devlin,” she said, watching as he folded the rather crumpled paper and slipped it into his pocket. His somewhat stern expression lightened at her words and he smoothed the tangled hair from her face. “I know, and I appreciate your efforts to make this mission successful, but this part of it is no longer your responsibility. I would have you in less danger. We still need to get this information to London, and I have no idea of how much the French know of our plans.” He smiled down at her, a slow, sensual smile that set the pulse in her neck beating furiously under his hand. “Devlin?” Angel whispered. She leaned toward him, her lips parting in unconscious invitation. He claimed her mouth for a long soft kiss and then gathered her into his arms. She loved being held so warmly and emboldened, she pressed closer and drew his head down for another kiss. She wanted, she was not sure what she craved but it was not the cool air that flowed between them when he straightened, slid from her grasp, and stepped back with a rueful smile. “No more, my girl,” he said with a stern look, although the heat in his eyes gave her a little shiver of satisfaction. She dropped her head to hide a smile, pleased to see she was not the only one affected. “Very well, sir, if you so wish.” She peered at him from under her lashes, guessing from the expression on his face he did not wish to stop any more than she did.
“Minx. You know very well I would like nothing better than to continue this all night, but this is neither the time nor place.” Laughing, he helped her from the table and steered her into the next cabin and onto the lower bunk before she could say another word. “Get some rest, Angel.” He stifled her half‐hearted protests with another brief kiss. “We will talk in the morning.” He turned toward the other occupant of the cabin. “Miss Peters? You will be able to manage the bunk?” he inquired. “Begging your pardon, sir, but I could sleep about anywhere right now. It’s not the first time I have bedded down in a bunk, and better than the ground, in any case.” Angel smiled at the young woman. “Thank you, Paula. I don’t think I have enough energy remaining to do any more climbing, even those few steps up.” St. Clair stood and pulled the blanket up to Angel’s chin. “Bon nuit. I will see you in the morning.” Angel watched as he left the cabin and smothered a yawn. “Come to bed, Paula. We will both be the better for some sleep.” “I’m sure, ma’am, and thankful to be safely on our way home.” Paula turned down the lantern and with a minimum of fuss, mounted the ladder and settled onto the berth above. Angel stared at the moonlight glimmering through the porthole and added her own silent prayer of thanksgiving. They were safe, for the moment at least, and although she dreaded telling Devlin her memory had returned, they had some time together yet. Perhaps, perhaps, they would….something. Angel smiled sleepily. There could be more adventures in the future. Anything was possible.
Chapter Eighteen Angel was up at first light. She felt wonderfully refreshed and wished fervently she had clean clothes to wear. The lack of attire was more than tedious, even if one of the crew had pressed out the worst of the creases and removed some of the dirt and stains. It even smelt better, she noticed. Not quite so horsy, which could not be said of her. Spying the water and bowl, she bathed as well as possible. It was a struggle to get her half boot on over the bandaged blister. Indeed, it was necessary to remove most of the linen wrap, but finally the thing was done and she donned the dress, neatly folded the Captain’s shirt, and placed it on the bunk. Paula still slept, poor thing, and Angel was reluctant to wake her. Quietly, she tossed her cloak around her shoulders and slipped out the door. She was not surprised to find the cabin boy waiting outside to escort her above. Neither the Captain nor St. Clair would want her to wander around alone. The bright sunlight and fresh salty air felt like heaven on her face, and she paused to survey the deck, her skirts blowing in the brisk breeze. Adam and his father sat a little distance away, backs against the cabin wall. They were deep in conversation, looking tired but relaxed and content. St. Clair stood by the rail with Ned, his blond hair bright in the morning light. She shaded her eyes with one hand, enjoying the sight of him. His shirt was open at the neck, the sleeves rolled up to his elbows, the white linen a sharp contrast to the bronze acquired during the ride through France. He, too, looked relaxed, with the worried look he had worn these past days gone from his face. “It has been a difficult time for you all,” the Captain said in a quiet voice as he came up behind her, his eyes following hers to rest on the Earl. “He told me some of your story. You were lucky to get away when you did. Thanks to you and the others, the mission has been successful. We make port in a few hours and then another journey for you, I’m afraid. St. Clair is anxious to get the information to London.” “It was almost entirely due to his efforts, Captain, though I like to think we were of some aid to him.” “He has told me as much.” Carlisle hesitated, his eyes searching her face. “Have you given any thought to the future?” She felt his gaze on her and she turned to face him. The grave look in his eyes spoke volumes of his regard for his friend’s well being. “I love him, very much, but will not trouble him much longer, if that is what concerns you.” “You mistake the matter,” he replied with a faint smile. “I wager to say it’s much the opposite, from what he has told me. Not trouble at all.” Undone by the kindness in his eyes, she fastened her gaze on some point above his shoulder, and took a deep breath before she answered. “We are worlds apart, Captain. He should return to his family… and I, I shall return to mine.” The last few words were almost inaudible, but it seemed Carlisle had sharp ears and his eyes widened in surprise. He glanced
once at St. Clair, who had yet to notice them, took a firm hold on Angel’s arm and led her below to his temporary cabin. “You have regained your memory?” he asked incredulously. “And have not told St. Clair? Why, for God’s sake? Surely you must be aware of his concern for you.” “Of course, I know of it! He is the kindest man in the world. So honourable he would feel obligated to protect me at any cost. And I will not allow it.” She looked daggers at him, daring him to contradict her and was disconcerted when he began to laugh. “If you think you can stop him when he is set on something, I’d like to see it. Devilish stubborn, St. Clair.” He gestured towards a chair. “Sit down, Angel, if you don’t mind me calling you that. Or you might try telling me your real name?” There was a challenge in his voice and Angel felt the colour rise in her cheeks. She bit her lips hesitantly and then, the sudden rush of anger subsiding as quickly as it had come, sank down in the chair indicated. Carlisle picked up a bottle of whiskey and two glasses from a shelf, set them on the table, and took the chair opposite. He poured out a measure of the spirit and looked a question at Angel. “Will you have some?” “It is much too early to be drinking, Captain,” she said in a shocked voice, but had the fleeting thought it might help to make the confession she faced somewhat easier. Carlisle grinned at her. “No doubt, but I have the feeling I may need it,” he said dryly. Angel looked defiantly at him for a moment, then sighed loudly and folded her hands under her chin. “My name is Juliette, Captain, Juliette Deveneau. Sir William Langford is my grandfather. I reside with him in Hampshire, and the last thing I do remember was waiting at a horrid little inn for my coachman to bring a carriage so we could continue our journey to London. The next thing I knew was waking up in a bed somewhere with Devlin standing over me.” “General Langford? Good God.” He looked stunned and she eyed him uncertainly. “You are acquainted with my grandfather, Captain?” “No, no,” he assured her, a look of unholy delight in his eyes. “That is, I met him once, that’s all. I do know, however, that St. Clair’s uncle is a close friend of his.” He looked as if he was trying desperately not to laugh and Angel stared at him in dismay. St. Clair’s uncle knew her grandfather? It would be doubly hard then to slip away as she had planned. If Grandpère found out she and the Earl had lived so intimately together for the past week, he would be on the warpath for sure. Something of her horror at the thought must have been visible, for Carlisle reached out to pat her hand and gave her a sympathetic smile. “This shouldn’t be something to upset you. St. Clair will be pleased as punch, once he gets used to the idea, and I cannot imagine why you have not yet told him. He has been very concerned about restoring you to your family.” Angel looked away to hide her misery and replied in a small voice, “He will insist we be married if he knows.” “Of course you will marry. You’ve admitted you love him and he cares about you. What would stop you? If you are thinking his family would have any objections to you, I can assure you, they will not.”
“I don’t want him to marry me because he feels he must, and he will think that because we have been together all this time,” she retorted and turned her head to glare at him. “I will not force him into an unwanted marriage, Captain. St. Clair does not want to marry. You heard him yourself, on this very ship. He was glad that Amanda woman married someone else.” “I promise you St. Clair’s feelings for you and his regard for Amanda are worlds apart, but I can see by the look on your face you won’t believe it and I’m not such a fool as to try.” Carlisle shook his head, grinned at her, and stood. “I think you very much mistaken, but St. Clair will need to convince you of it, not I. You need talk to him.” Carlisle reached out, helped her to her feet, and gave her a brief hug. “He won’t eat you, my dear. It would be most unfair not to tell him.” “Tell me what?” St. Clair bit out from his position at the door, glaring furiously at them both. “What exactly is going on here?” “Not a thing!” Carlisle said with a gleeful smile, and made a rapid departure. Angel winced and took a step back under the heat of St. Clair’s obvious anger. With one swift movement, he halted her retreat and grasped her shoulders firmly. “Tell me what,” he repeated in a hard voice, and she promptly burst into tears. “Confound it, woman, don’t cry. You must know I would never hurt you.” This assurance seemed to make her sob all the harder and with a groan he gathered her into his arms. “Angel, Angel. What could be troubling you so? We will soon land in England and our mission was successful, thanks in part to you. If it’s your family troubling you, I promise I will scour the length of England, if need be, to find out where you belong. My dear, do you really feel there is anything you cannot tell me?” He picked her up and went to sit on the side of the bunk. Angel struggled to contain her sobs. The uncertainties of the past week, her guilt at not being honest, combined with fatigue and discomfort, seemed suddenly to be overwhelming. “Come now, love. You are getting my shirt all wet, and I had to promise faithfully I would return it in good condition before Carlisle would lend it to me.” Angel sniffed and made a half‐hearted attempt to move away. If her dearest Devlin could make even a little joke, she could certainly pull herself together. “Oh, no, my girl. Here you will stay until you tell me whatever it is you don’t want to tell me.” He chuckled at this contrary sentence but kept a firm grip on her. “I would prefer not to talk to the top of your head. Won’t you look at me?” “I need a handkerchief,” she said softly, embarrassed at her display. She took the proffered square of linen and blew her nose with a businesslike sniff. “I am sorry, Devlin, to be so missish.” She looked up at him, her heart in her eyes. “I was afraid, you see, afraid that if you knew I had regained much of my memory you would not let me stay with you, or you would insist on offering for me because we have been together all this time.” She reached up and pushed the windblown hair from his forehead with a gentle caress. “Oh, Devlin, I so wanted you to want me just for myself,” she admitted, her eyes on his face, half expecting him to reject her outright, and half hoping he did care for her. The answer came in a bruising kiss that left her weak and trembling, her heart pounding in her ears.
“You little fool,” he growled. “I don’t give a tinker’s damn who you are and haven’t for days. And if you can doubt for a minute that I love you, then you are a bigger lackwit than that curst duck.” Since he followed this brusque statement with a series of kisses that had the effect of driving any sense whatsoever from her stunned brain, she stopped trying to think at all and responded to his kisses with growing confidence. It was wonderful, this sensation running throughout her body. Her hand slipped into the opening of his shirt, reveling in the warmth of his skin and the wiry feel of the hair curling on his chest. Her own breasts ached, and she tried to press her body even closer to him. “Is this what you want, sweetheart?” The buttons on her dress were undone, one by one, and between each button, his fingers grazed across the hardened nipples peaking against the cloth. The brush of her chemise against her heated skin was maddening and she squirmed against his hand. “Please. Please,” she sighed into his mouth and wound her fingers in his hair as she returned his kisses. She never dreamed anything could feel so delightful and she wiggled in his lap in an attempt to get even closer. With a hoarse groan, he fell back on the bunk, pinned her beneath him and captured her wandering hands in one of his. It was too much, her sweet response. This had to stop. It would stop. “No more, Angel. This is not the time or place. Someone could come in at any time. Nor will I break my vow to keep you safe.” “I am quite safe,” she protested, her voice husky. “You are not safe from me. No, it will not do, sweetheart. We will wait until all is proper.” “Must we?” She smiled up at him, a slow, languorous smile that tested him sorely. “Yes, we must.” He caught his breath at the sight of her swollen, rosy lips. Her eyes were dark with desire and it was all he could do to ease away and close up her dress with hands suddenly clumsy. “We really, really must?” she asked as she twined her fingers through the overly long hair curling at his neck. “We really, really, must.” St. Clair gave her one last lingering kiss, then rose, took her hands, and pulled her upright. He pressed his mouth against her palm. “You look beautiful. I could eat you up, little one.” His smile widened when her breath quickened at his words. She was infinitely appealing, with her hair wild around her face and her eyes full of longing, and he was rock hard again. This would never do. He stood her on her feet and gave her a playful slap on her bottom. “Away from that bunk,” he ordered. “We need to talk and you are far too tempting. Beside which, you have a story to tell, I believe.” He countered the quick appraising look she gave him over her shoulder as she moved away with a tight smile and shake of his head. “I do,” she agreed with obvious reluctance and began making an attempt to tidy her hair and clothing. St. Clair put his hands on her shoulders and steered her to a chair. “You look well enough. Sit.”
“I’m sure I look horrid,” she grumbled, but sat down and folded her hands on the table. “May I have some water, please?” St. Clair poured some water into a mug and pushed it across the table before he sat in the chair opposite. “It won’t work, Angel, so you can stop staring at me like a starving puppy and start talking.” “I am not looking like a begging puppy,” she denied, but dropped the wistful pose and looked straightly at him. “I have remembered who I am, you see, and where I come from, and have since Paula joined us.” The shock of this revelation hit him like a blow to the midriff. He felt his temper rise, along with the ache in his heart. She had not trusted him with her secret. He wanted to shout at her, stomp out of the cabin, anything to ease the pain of her betrayal. “Why did you not tell me then? Granted it was a hectic afternoon, but we had time together that evening. You could have spoken of it then. In fact, I am amazed you did not. It must have been a wonderful thing for you.” His effort to keep any hint of distress and hurt from his voice was not successful, it seemed, for she reached out and laid her hand on his arm. “Please try to understand,” she pleaded. “It was such a grand adventure, being Mrs. Williams. I knew I should tell you the truth but I was afraid it would change things between us; you would not allow me to be your wife any longer, and I couldn’t bear it.” St. Clair was not at all sure he understood this reasoning, or knew if he would have pushed her away, but she was no doubt right to think it would have changed things between them. Very well might continue to change things. Hell and damnation, just who was she, anyway? “I don’t know what I would have done. Right now, I’m having a hard time understanding how you could keep something so important from me. You knew how concerned I was about finding your family.” He covered her hand with one of his. “I’d thought we were partners.” It was the mildest of rebukes and had the effect of draining every bit of colour from her face. “I am so sorry, Devlin,” she whispered. “I never meant to hurt you.” The misery on her face was his undoing. He rose and pulled her into his arms. “I know you didn’t.” He tipped up her chin and combed back her tangled hair with his fingers. Her eyes were suspiciously bright and he frowned. “No tears, Angel, remember?” “I remember.” Her lips were trembling, and he covered her mouth with his, drinking in her sweet response until they both were breathless. He paused to look down at her. “No more secrets, Angel. I don’t want you to ever feel there is anything you can’t tell me.” She buried her face in his shoulder, her “I won’t” barely audible and he shrugged off a twinge of doubt at her choice of words. “Suppose you start with telling me who you are.” He set her at arm’s length. Sighing, she resumed her seat and began to tell him of all that had befallen her since she had left her grandfather’s house. “Hells’ bells, you are the General’s granddaughter? Well, of all the possibilities imaginable this would have been the last thing to come to mind.” He started to laugh. “You just happen to be related to one of my uncle’s oldest friends?” he choked out. “We are in the suds now! It’s a
good thing we plan to marry, my sweet, or we would be having one of those forced marriages you are so afraid of.” Her eyes widened at this. “But Devlin, Grandpère would not force me to marry you if I did not choose to do so, and I have not agreed to marry you. In fact, you haven’t even asked me!” “The devil he wouldn’t.” St. Clair was quite certain Sir William would do just that. Nor could he blame him. “It isn’t an issue, however, since we are definitely getting married, as soon as I can obtain a special license.” Her eyes flashed with annoyance and she glowered at him. “Grandpère would not do any such thing. I won’t be married just because of some possible gossip.” St. Clair stood and drew her up beside him. “Don’t be an idiot. It wouldn’t be a little gossip, but a scandal of grand proportions. Your reputation would be ruined and it wouldn’t do much for mine, either.” “I think you are quite mistaken,” she began to protest. “I am not,” he interrupted, but seeing her very real distress, smiled and touched her mouth lightly with his fingers. “You can trust me on this, Angel. Society can be vastly unkind.” She looked at him doubtfully and his mouth twisted. “Is it such a horrible thing, being married to me?” “No, of course not.” Her response was quick and forceful, and he felt some hidden knot inside his chest ease. “Then I’ll ask you here and now, no matter that we are far from the setting I would have chosen. Will you marry me?” St. Clair kept every bit of expression from his face. What if she said no? What if he was mistaken in believing her attraction to him? No, he couldn’t be, he assured himself as she looked searchingly at him, but the moments before she replied seemed as long as an hour. “I will, Devlin,” she said at last. “I only hope you are certain this is what you want and you are not being chivalrous from some misguided desire to protect me. I know you were happy your former fiancé married someone else.” “That, my sweet, was a marriage of convenience. This, I suspect, will be anything but, given your habit of getting into scrapes.” Her eyes opened wide with indignation. “I do not get into scrapes, sir. Always they are situations that need to be sorted out.” St. Clair grinned at her and tugged at a tangled lock of hair curling across her shoulder. “For the sake of my nerves, I hope you will refrain from any further sorting for a time.” “Ha. You haven’t a nervous bone in your body,” she retorted, her eyes narrowed. “I hide it very well,” he said blandly and set her whooping with laughter. “You are quite outrageous, sir.” “So I’ve been told a time or two.” He grinned at her and held out his hand. “Now, before we join the others, I want to know how you came to be in my coach and how you were injured.” Looking startled by this perfectly reasonable question, Angel wrinkled her forehead in concentration. “I cannot tell you, Devlin, since I have no memory of it. The last thing I can remember is waiting at that dreadful inn for my coachman to return. We were on the way to
London when our coach lost a wheel, and we had to take shelter where we could, for naturally it was raining as well. I know we stayed there for the night, and that John Coachman went off the next morning to hire a carriage – for my maid was injured and we planned to return home, but whenever I do try to think about it my head aches so I can’t go on. I find it hard to believe I wandered off and was lost or that someone took me from there. Why anyone would want to do so, I cannot imagine. I have no great wealth, and that anyone was overcome with my beauty is an even more fantastical idea,” she declared. “I would carry you off in a trice.” He leaned down to steal a kiss. “Stop trying to remember. It will come to you eventually. Now come up on deck with me. I want you to go over it again, with Carlisle to listen as well. There must be something you saw or heard. Strathmere’s estate is a good distance from any inn, which makes the idea of you wandering off improbable. It is much more likely someone took you from there for a reason. “But Devlin,” she protested, “I am so hungry. Can it not wait?” “No, it cannot. We will reach port soon and Carlisle will be otherwise occupied. Once ashore, we must leave for London.” Ignoring her spluttering protests, St. Clair pushed her from the cabin and led her above decks. “Gad, Angel, you seem always to be thinking of food!” “It may well be because there is so little of it lately,” Angel threw back at him as she stepped onto the deck. She filled her lungs with the fresh, salty air and looked around curiously. Paula, Adam and his father were standing in a sheltered spot, looking rested — and well fed, she grumbled crossly. Now if only she could get something to eat she would be just as content. Perhaps she could ask…. But the Captain was ahead of her and she beamed at him as he approached with a steaming cup in one hand and something enticingly fragrant in the other. “Oh, you are wonderful, Captain,” she cried when he handed them both to her with a grin. “I am glad to see you in one piece, Angel. I was prepared to rescue you from this mean bully,” he joked with a laugh. “I hope he was not too cruel to you?” Angel smiled back at him, liking him more and more. “No more than I deserved, Captain,” she told him, giving St. Clair a sly look as she spoke. Carlisle clapped a hand on St. Clair’s shoulder. “It appears congratulations are in order, you lucky dog. How you manage to come up sweet smelling every time you jump into trouble is a mystery and this time you have outdone yourself.” He looked at Angel, who was happily munching on the hot roll stuffed with cheese, and shook his head. “Amazing.” “Amazing isn’t quite the word I’d use,” St. Clair replied in an amused voice. Angel rolled her eyes at him, and leaving him to converse with the Captain, wandered over to join the others. “Bonjour. You look very cozy here. Did you rest well? Have enough to eat?” “We have done very well, Miss Angel. I slept in a hammock and did not fall out once,” Adam cried. He jumped up and gave her a hug. His father and Paula rose as well, though not quite so agilely. “We have eaten, thank you, ma’am. The Captain has taken very good care of us.” Paula paused to smile shyly at Carlisle, who, along with St. Clair, had come up behind Angel. “But
you should have woken me, ma’am. I would have helped you with that blister. If you wish, we could go below now and tend to it.” “No, it can wait, Paula. Mr. Williams treated it well enough last night, and we have things to discuss with the Captain before we dock. I did want to ask if you wished to accompany us to London. Though I know you have no obligation to us, it would please me very much to have you with us. You and your father as well, scamp,” Angel added when Adam looked crestfallen. “We have been having some fine adventures, haven’t we? I’m certain you would like to see it through to the end, and I would miss having Hickory around, to be sure.” Adam grinned at this blatant fib. “We will go, won’t we, Dad? You don’t need to take me to Grandfather’s right away. I would like to see London. They say there are buildings there as big as that mast up there.” Kenneth Wolfe looked down at his son’s bright face and then looked hesitantly at Angel. She smiled encouragingly at him, hoping he could see how sincerely she wanted them to come. “Please do join us, Mr. Wolfe. We would like to spend a little more time with Adam.” Wolfe looked at St. Clair, who nodded his agreement, and then he laid a hand on Adam’s shoulder. “Yes, we can go to London, if it is what you want, ma’am. Adam, you will need to keep Hickory out of trouble, you understand. I’m sure everyone has had enough of that bird by now.” Adam let out a whoop and promised fervently not to let Hickory out of his sight for a minute. “I will go tell him about it right now,” he shouted, and bounded away in a rush. “I’ll go as well, ma’am, and see to him, and tidy up below, if you permit?” Paula asked, although she was already moving away. Angel gave her a grateful smile. “Of course, it would be good of you, Paula,” she agreed at once. St. Clair would not want them involved in this affair any more than they already were, Adam’s father excepting. Angel believed St. Clair felt him a man to be trusted, and it seemed her feeling was correct, as he included Wolfe in his suggestion they move to a more sheltered spot for a council of war. Of course he must know the Earl’s true identity, but not everything, certainly, and Angel wondered how much St. Clair would tell him. She moved to stand beside him and listened carefully. “Now we are about to land, I feel it important you both are aware of what is going on. Shortly before we embarked for France, Angel was in a coach accident whilst traveling from her grandfather’s home to London. They had no choice but to put up for the night at a very questionable hostelry. Whatever happened there is uncertain, but something did, for she was found several days later, miles away. She sent word to me and after I went to get her, we drove directly to Portsmouth. So there was no time to make inquiries and because of her injury, Mrs. Williams has no memory of those days. I am hopeful the more minds put to this riddle, the more liable someone will catch something we have missed. How could she get so far away and how did she come to be injured?” Angel peered sideways at him. No one would ever know from the easy, open expression on his face that his smooth explanation of events was a fabrication that raised no doubts as to their ‘married’ state. Amused by his flair for the inventive, she smiled to herself and returned her attention to the conversation.
Kenneth Wolfe was the first to speak, after a long pause while the men mulled over the situation. “Could this have anything to do with your purpose in France?” “No, it could not. It is the one thing I am sure of and it makes this whole thing so puzzling. There does not seem to be a reason.” “Yet there must be a reason,” Carlisle insisted. “We are missing something. Tell me everything you can about the inn, Mrs. Williams. Did you see anyone while you were there?” Angel frowned in concentration, trying to remember. “Only the innkeeper, who I can tell you, was not very pleased to have us there. In fact, it seemed somewhat odd there were no other patrons — not even any local people in the taproom, although it was quite late when we arrived.” She shrugged and smiled ruefully. “I’m sorry, but the only remarkable thing about it was how dirty and shabby it was.” They discussed it for a few more minutes, coming to no real conclusion, and Angel took advantage of the break in the conversation to satisfy her curiosity. “Before you go off with the Captain, Mr. Wolfe, will you tell us how it was you came to look for us? It is an amazing coincidence, you must admit.” She smiled at him. “Astonishing, in fact, for you could not have known Adam was with us.” Wolfe smiled back at her and then nodded toward St. Clair. “The real miracle was having my petition land on Lord Strathmere’s desk, Mrs. Williams. I don’t believe the name of the hôtel in Rouen would have meant anything to another person in England. That’s what started it all.” He looked over at Carlisle. “The Captain here, has already heard this, but I’ll tell it again, if I’ve leave.” Carlisle swept his eyes around the deck and nodded agreement. “We’ve a few minutes yet before you’re needed, Wolfe, and it’s always wise to satisfy a lady’s curiosity. By all means, tell your story. I am called to duty, however.” He bowed to Angel, nodded in the general direction of the men, and hurried away.” “I am curious as well, Wolfe,” St. Clair said, “but would prefer to hear this tale in a less windy spot.” He took Angel’s arm and guided her to a row of boxes lashed to the deck in a more sheltered area. “Sit here for a few minutes. Wolfe has work to do and I want you below and out of this wind.” Wolfe stood to one side of Angel, blocking the wind to some extent, and smiled faintly. “It was like this. Adam will have told you we were bound for England, seeing as I couldn’t leave him alone after his mother died. Her parents live in Southampton and they would gladly have him when I’m at sea. We were a day’s sail out when a storm blew up, strong enough to send us off course and snap the forward mast right in half. Wolfe made a snapping motion with his hands. Angel started at the sudden movement, but judging from the distant look on the seaman’s face, thought he was unaware of his gesture. She rested her chin on one hand, and leaning a little against St. Clair, settled in to listen. “We limped into port to make repairs, thinking it would only be a matter of days, for the ship was well provisioned and carried a spare mast, but there was delay after delay of one sort or another. I’d taken Adam to an inn I knew from previous trips, for a ship under repair can be a dangerous place for a lad, and us being passengers this trip, I had no work to do. And there’s
the root of the thing, for my funds were getting low. I’d just about made up my mind to look for another passage to England, even though we were paid all the way through; when I met up with a fellow I’d sailed with once before. Not a man I thought highly of, but he was a good seaman for all that, and one who had a tough time of it, being a mix of French and American as he was.” Wolfe waved his hands in an apologetic manner and went on slowly. “It put a bit of a bond between us, him being from New England, where otherwise I would not have been so trusting. He offered me a chance to pick up a bit of money, taking a place on a fishing boat headed across the channel with a cargo of French wine. Nip over and back, two days away at most, and I jumped at it.” He grimaced at the memory and shrugged. “Smuggling is rampant all along the coast of both countries, as I am sure you are aware, and there are few who would look askance on it. “I picked up the boat in a fishing village near Le Havre a few nights later. There were two other of the crew, both French, but I have enough of the language to get along well enough. The weather was good and a routine trip for most of the way. When we were in sight of the English coast I noticed a lantern burning in the cabin and the light shining clear out for anyone to see. I spoke out about it and was told to take care of it. What a fool I was! For it was a signal, you see, that would let any patrol know we were there. I’d gone below to put it out, and that’s when I saw another boat, but it was too late for me by then, for the next thing I knew was a boot in the ribs and an aching head. I tried to tell your Navy men I’d been set up as a decoy, but there I was, with a boatload of brandy and no way to prove my story. They believed it was a falling out among thieves and me likely to have done away with the others. I was put away on a prison ship before I knew it. Lucky for me one of the guards was willing to obtain paper and pen and dispatch a letter to the American Consul. They contacted Lord Strathmere, he ordered my release, and when I’d told him my story, asked me to help you in return for passage to France.” “Quite a story, Wolfe,” St. Clair said with a laugh. “I’m not much of a believer in coincidence, but this time it appears someone was working in your favor.” “It is astounding, and a very good thing to have come out well,” Angel declared with a sharp little nod. “Now you are reunited with Adam and all are happy.” “Much due to you folks, for taking care of my boy,” Wolfe said gruffly. “Now if you will excuse me, I’ll be about my duties.” “And you, my sweet, need to have some attention to your blister.” St. Clair took Angel’s arm and started forward at a brisk pace. “Why must you rush so, Devlin?” Angel protested. “I cannot go so quickly.” “Can you not? In that case.” He plucked her from the steps and tossed her over his shoulder, ignoring her squeals. “What are you about? Put me down, you wretch,” she demanded, giggling. Undeterred by this audacious behavior, Angel began to tickle his ribs. “You little devil,” he growled, swinging her to her feet when they reached the cabin door. “You will have to pay a forfeit for that.” Unrepentant, she smiled up at him and wrapped her arms around his neck.
“Shall I, Devlin? Did you have something in mind?” She rose up on her toes to place a kiss on his mouth and with a groan he surrendered and held her close. “That will do very well, I believe,” St. Clair said some moments later. “Very nice indeed.” “Will you not want more forfeits, Devlin? Perhaps I should tickle you again?” Angel questioned with a laugh. “I will want many more forfeits, but not now. If I am not mistaken, we are about to have company.” The sound of quacking grew louder and they moved apart with mutual expressions of regret. “Ah, bien, it is too bad,” she said, putting on a demure expression. “I shall expect payment another time, sir.” “Count on it,” he said with a look that brought the blood flowing to her face, then with a resigned sigh, turned to intercept that curst duck.
Chapter Ninteen “Absolutely not. You must make some accommodations, sir, for travel. Another hour filthy and reeking of horse I will not,” Angel declared when they disembarked in Portsmouth. St. Clair took one look at the obstinate set to her face and sent Ken Wolfe off to locate some clothing and Ned to hire a post chaise, while he located a decent inn. It was in any case too late in the day to start for London. They would leave early the following morning, excepting Ned, who would ride ahead and make arrangements to change horses and bespeak a meal at several inns along the way. Even with that, it would be dusk before they reached London. As expected, little daylight remained when the chaise halted in front of the Strathmere town house. St. Clair was not surprised to see the building well lit. Carlisle’s express reporting their safe arrival would have reached London hours before and the Viscount would be anxious to see them. Resigned, he set about the disposition of his charges. A sleepy‐eyed Miss Peters, Adam, barely awake himself, and his obviously fatigued father, were placed in the hands of the pleasant‐faced housekeeper who awaited them in the entry hall. With a cluck of sympathy, she led them away to their rooms, while the Earl helped Angel from the coach and sent Ned and the coachmen off to the stables with a stern command to leave the horses to the grooms and get some rest. Strathmere’s butler, Parrow, a tall, taciturn man who St. Clair knew was the soul of discretion looked inquiringly at them as they entered the hall. “Your room is prepared, ma’am, if you would follow me? His lordship is expecting you in the library, sir.” Angel smiled at the gray‐haired butler, but shook her head. “Thank you, but no. I will see Lord Strathmere as well.” St. Clair gazed at her pale face with concern. “Will you not retire, Angel? I am sure my uncle does not look to see you tonight, after such a long journey. Tomorrow will be soon enough.” “I am not as tired as that. Indeed, you must be equally fatigued. I have come this far and will see it through.” She looked closely at his face and laughed. “It would seem we are much of a pair, sir, and I hope your uncle does not have high expectations of our appearance. Besides, I could not sleep a wink, I assure you, until I know if my Grandfather has been told of my whereabouts.” She handed her cloak to the waiting butler and took the Earl’s hand firmly in hers. He glanced at their entwined fingers, and at her calm and determined expression, and without another word, led her across the hall and into the library. In unspoken agreement, they paused in the doorway, eyes going at once to the man who stood behind the large desk. He looked so weary, was St. Clair’s first thought, and he had no doubt it was in a large part due to worry about this mission. He was certain as well his behavior was responsible for some of the lines of care and worry etched on the older man’s pale face. Nonetheless, the deep‐set eyes that kept them rooted in place were as sharp and knowledgeable as ever, and the Earl felt that steady gaze observe and evaluate every aspect of
their appearance. His lordship’s first words at once confirmed this and St. Clair sent him a silent salute in admiration. “Ah, it is indeed Miss Deveneau,” Strathmere drawled. “We suspected as much, however difficult it was to believe. Do come in, my dear, and my rapscallion nephew as well.” His solemn face broke into a smile and he came around the desk and held out his hands to them in welcome, gathering them both in a warm embrace. “I am relieved to see you safely home, children, though I find your attire somewhat unusual.” He stepped back and held them at arm’s length. “I see I am about to gain a new member of the family.” His eyes met St. Clair’s and the Earl felt his face heat at the look of approval in them. “Carlisle has told you, Uncle?” he asked diffidently, embarrassed by the unspoken regard. He gripped Angel’s hand harder and moved closer to her. “Carlisle has told me next to nothing, as usual,” Strathmere replied. He sounded resigned at the Captain’s reticence but his eyes glimmered with amusement. “You cannot go around smelling of April and May and expect to hide your relationship, St. Clair. It will be obvious to anyone who lays eyes on you two.” Angel gave St. Clair a rueful smile, her head tilted in question. “Ah bien, all is discovered. Shall you mind very much, my lord? One of your secrets is no more.” She looked at Strathmere, her eyes bright with laughter. “St. Clair is very fond of secrets, you understand,” she teased. “It is of all things what I dislike most about him.” “Oh, ho, there is the pot calling the kettle black indeed,” St. Clair retorted. He smiled down at her. “You have been known to hoard a secret or two, Miss Deveneau.” The deliberate use of her name and cocked eyebrow brought another rosy glow to her cheeks as she laughingly protested such slander. The men laughed as well, easing the emotional reunion, and Strathmere waved a hand at the two chairs set by the smoldering fire and settled in another nearby. “It is very late and much can wait until morning, but there are some things it is necessary to discuss now. Carlisle wrote that the affair was successful. This is correct?” He waited for their nods and went on briskly. “First, let me relieve your mind, Juliette, and tell you your grandfather is here and is aware you have been found safe and sound. I persuaded him not to wait to see you, in case you were delayed until tomorrow, although he was most reluctant to retire.” “Oh, that is beyond wonderful, sir.” She leaned forward and grasped Strathmere’s hand. “I don’t know how this came to be, my lord, but thank you so very much. It has been a great concern, I admit, for he is not a young man and this must have been very worrisome for him.” “I had little to do with it,” the Viscount assured her. “You may want to have a word with my secretary, however, as he was a very successful detective in obtaining information about you. However, that also can wait until the morning. Now I need a briefing from you, St. Clair. You obtained the list of Royalists who are willing to aid us?” The Earl nodded, exchanging a glance with Angel before drawing the precious paper from his pocket. “I have not looked at it, nor has Angel, though I must admit to great temptation, sir,” he admitted. His eyes met hers in shared remembrance of their heated discussion in Amiens.
“I’m pleased to be shed of it and will be even more so when Angel has told you her other secret,” he went on, and knew his mouth was tight with worry. “One I feel has put her in great danger, as I believe you will agree.” They both turned to face her, but were content to wait while she marshaled her thoughts and was ready to begin her story. “It may well be, my lord, that you are acquainted with a certain French émigré, who from what I have read in the newssheets, is a trusted member of the highest circles and a friend of the Prince as well. This being the case, it may be difficult to believe he has betrayed this country and the people who extended hospitality to him.” She looked earnestly at them, a plea for understanding in her eyes. “But I now know much of this man’s background and have every reason to believe his nature is such as to warrant so major an accusation. La Comtesse shared some of her history with me and understands I will relate all to you.” Angel paused, her eyes dropping to her lap, where St. Clair’s fingers rested on her clasped hands, and seeming to take strength from his support, she continued. “La Comtesse was born into an aristocratic family and she married into another such family. Her parents died within a few years of each other, and the elder of her two brothers, Robert, inherited most of the extensive estate, with a substantial portion going to the younger brother, Georges, who was somewhat of a scholar and quite reclusive. The brothers had few things in common, and there was little love between them. As well, Robert resented that his brother had inherited such a large share, most of which was in jewelry and coinage and thus not tied to the land. They were seldom together, however, as Robert spent most of his time in Paris. “La Comtesse lived many years in Paris as well, but when her husband died in a hunting accident, the bulk of his property went to a nephew. She then chose to retire to her family home and more or less manage the estate. She was a devoted sister, I believe, being some years older than her brothers, and was content with her life.” Angel stared into the fire and seemed almost unaware of their presence, St. Clair realized, seeing the frown gather between her eyes. He started to speak, then caught his uncle’s eye, thought better of it and settled back. She had told him none of this and he remembered now her comment that the Frenchwoman’s life had been hard. How foolish he had been to ignore it and not question her further. “I think she paid very little attention to the unrest and political upheaval growing in the cities and Paris in particular,” Angel speculated in a hesitant voice. “Her brother came from time to time, usually with his friends, and although she did not much care for them she acted as his hostess when he wished it.” She looked over at the Earl, a sly little gleam in her eyes. “He was a shockingly expensive man, I gathered, as men sometimes are, but you would know more about that than I.” “Minx,” he replied mildly, knowing she referred to his insistence on providing expensive gowns for her, not to mention his familiarity with women’s fashions. He gave her a slow wink that brought a blush to her cheeks and she hurried on with her tale. “It was the summer of some of the worst excesses, when mobs roamed most freely, burning and destroying as they wished. Her brother was there at the Chateau, alone for a change, and she suggested they all go to Paris until things settled down, but he refused, saying
it was worse in the city. It was much later she learned he had offended some very powerful people and was unwelcome in the capital just then. In what way, or who, la Comtesse did not say, but it was only a few days after he arrived that the Chateau was attacked and burned by a mob that rampaged through the town, killing and looting wherever they could.” Angel’s face was almost devoid of colour now and the Earl leaned forward, his protective instincts aroused. This was too much for her, exhausted as she was, but a sharp gesture from his uncle stopped his comment and reluctantly he eased back in the chair. Angel sat arrow straight now, her eyes fixed on Strathmere’s face, and she pressed her lips together briefly. “My father was one of those victims. He went to the Chateau, to warn them, after Marie and I were safely away from our house.” Her voice faltered and she took a deep breath. “We never knew what happened that night. Only that Papa never returned to us, and with the building in flames, we could only suppose he had died in the fire. Now I know the truth.” “My dear, you don’t need to go on with this,” St. Clair told her roughly, not caring whether his uncle agreed or not. “I do,” she cried. She jumped up, her skirts swirling as she made a restless turn around the room. “I need someone to hear.” She came to a stop in front of the men, who sat mesmerized as the tale tumbled from her. “The Chateau was already on fire when my father got there. The servants had run away and Papa went up to the family’s private quarters. They were all there, in le Comte’s office, Madame and her brothers. Jewelry was scattered everywhere, and the brothers were fighting, rolling on the floor, while she screamed for them to stop, that they had to leave. Papa told her to go, and tried to separate the two men, but he didn’t realize they were struggling for a pistol. It went off and Papa was hit.” Angel bowed her head and stared down at her clenched fists. “I suppose one could call it an accident,” she mused, almost to herself. “But what came next was not.” There was a bite in her voice now and St. Clair saw her face tighten with bitterness. “Georges had caught his brother taking the jewelry from the safe. That’s why they were fighting. At first, Georges and la Comtesse believed Robert meant to use it for them all to live on, but that was not his plan. He cared nothing for them, only for himself and meant to go off alone and leave them. “When Georges knelt to see if he could help my father, le Compté hit him with the pistol and then turned on his sister. She was certain he meant to kill her, and she fled, thinking to come back to help Georges, but she was trapped by the fire.” Angel’s voice choked with emotion. “La Comtesse was badly burned and would have died if her old nurse hadn’t managed to help her escape. She and her husband took Madame to a small convent not yet ravaged by the revolutionaries. The nuns nursed her for months at great risk to themselves. “Madame believes Papa was killed instantly,” Angel added in a whisper. She sank onto her chair and groped blindly for the handkerchief St. Clair held out. “Excuse me,” Angel apologized with a sniff. “She was so very brave, alone and maimed, yet strong enough to turn
her one remaining asset into a haven, and support herself as well. And then endanger it all by working with the Royalists.” There was a long silence and St. Clair rose to pour them all a glass of wine from the decanter on the sideboard. He remained standing, looking down at her tear stained face, careful to keep his voice calm, although he was so outraged at what he had just heard he could scarcely hide it. “It is the brother who is working against us, I gather? Does he believe his sister dead?” “I think he believed so until recently. She did not confide everything to me, you understand. We spoke mainly of the past.” “This is something that puzzles me a great deal,” Strathmere replied. “La Comtesse has been of inestimable help to us, and we owe her much, but she has remained adamant all along that no one was to know her identity or attempt to discover it.” Angel returned his gaze straightly and dropped her bombshell into the silence. “She told me because she recognized me. Her brother is the Marquis d’Roberge, you see. Here he styles himself Robert Entremont, Compté d’Laraque, but his family is Roberge and their lands encompass the town where I was born.” “What? You knew who la Comtesse was? How could you keep such a thing from me?” St. Clair’s furious outburst was checked by his uncle, who wore a look of surprise mingled with satisfaction on his face. “I don’t suppose she had any choice, St. Clair,” Strathmere interjected. “I’m sure secrecy was one of the stipulations la Comtesse insisted upon. As to how she would have known Miss Deveneau, I have heard it said she looks very much like her mother. Is that not the case, my dear?” Angel managed a nod. Her eyes were huge in her white face and the look of pleading was enough to make St. Clair swear as he went to her. “Confound it, you are not to cry,” he growled, frowning at her tear stained face. Her lips curled at the harsh words so at odds with the concern in his eyes. “I will not cry, Devlin, since you dislike it so very much.” She touched his cheek with trembling fingers. He caught her hand, carried it to his lips, and placed a soft kiss on her palm. “I can understand why the woman kept her history a secret but I do wish you had felt me worthy of your trust. You must have known by then I would never expose her, or you, no matter what the provocation.” “It was never that, Devlin. I do trust you. Please try to understand. I did not want to have this come between us, but I had given my promise.” He gazed at her upturned face, seeing such love and longing in her eyes he felt overwhelmed. “You told me in Amiens you honoured your promises and I shouldn’t be surprised when you do so.” He touched his mouth gently, briefly to hers. “I can see you will go your own way, love, and lead me a pretty dance, no doubt, but as long as it is my dance, I will be satisfied.” “Always, Devlin,” Angel whispered, and seemed content to gaze into his eyes; until Strathmere’s discreet cough brought them back to the present.
“If we can return to our discussion now? You youngsters may have boundless energy but I am looking forward to my bed,” Strathmere said with a sardonic lift of his brows. St. Clair smiled at Angel’s guilty wince and they hurriedly resumed their seats. “You will not know, St. Clair, that Miss Deveneau’s father was a solicitor in Estarney before the terror.” He looked at Angel, who nodded in agreement and explained, “Papa was of help to la Comtesse in resolving some legal matters for her, and the family sometimes held a fete for the children of the town.” “Did you ever meet le Compté?” St. Clair asked, still astounded at this amazing coincidence. “Mais non, how could it be? I was a child, you understand,” Angel replied with a shrug. “He was not such a one who would attend a children’s party. Though I did see him once,” she added, sounding surprised at the memory. “I had gone with Papa to get the bread. He came into the bakery while we were there and I remember being very impressed because everyone stopped talking and stared at him.” She waved her hands and shrugged again, a smile lighting her tired face. “Of course, I stared as well, although I had no idea why. It was not until later that I learned he was le Compté. It was most disappointing, too,” she added with a light laugh. “I thought all nobles would be like the knights in my story books, with a white charger and armor.” The men smiled, but Strathmere was quick with his next question. “You would recognize him again?” “I cannot say. It has been so many years.” Her shoulders drooped with disappointment and weariness. “Perhaps if I were to see him again,” she offered, “although what it would prove I do not know.” St. Clair looked at his uncle, rose and half‐lifted Angel to her feet. “Bed for you, my girl. We can continue this discussion in the morning. In any case, there is nothing to be done now. You are for your bed as well, sir.” He pinned his uncle with a stern look, waiting until the older man got to his feet before he put his arm around Angel’s shoulder and guided her to the door. A lamp burned low in the spacious hallway and they had taken only a few steps when Parrow appeared to lead them to the well‐appointed bedchamber allotted to Angel. He opened the door and then stepped back to wait for the Earl. St. Clair lifted Angel, already half asleep, onto the bed and removed her shoes. “Bon nuit, my love.” He tucked the quilt around her and brushed a light kiss on her forehead. He wanted desperately to join her. Soon, he told himself, very soon, and he blew out the candle and left the room.
Chapter Twenty Someone was in the room. Angel opened one eye, stared for a minute at the colorful canopy above her, and cautiously moved her head sideways. Ah, only Paula, hanging clothing in a huge wardrobe. Angel opened the other eye and pushed herself up on one elbow. Lord Strathmere’s residence, of course. She looked around at the pretty room, done up in shades of green and gold. No pink, she thought with amusement, remembering the chamber in Amiens with affection. “You are awake, ma’am,” Paula said, turning at the sound of the soft laughter. “You have had a good sleep and will be the better for it. I know I am.” She smiled at Angel. Angel threw off the quilt and stretched. “I will be the better for a bath, Paula, and something decent to wear.” She wrinkled her nose as she climbed out of the bed. “Those around me will be better off as well, for I am of a certainty quite aromatic, even with that little bath yesterday, and not pleasantly so!” “The water is heated and awaits your pleasure,” Paula assured her. “I had a bath earlier and must say it is nice to be clean again.” She looked down at her dress and smoothed her hand over the skirt. “The housekeeper gave me this and some underclothes as well.” She beamed at Angel. “Everyone here is very helpful, ma’am.” “It’s the very least you deserve,” Angel declared, “after being dragged willy‐nilly around France as you were. Dare I hope clean clothes for me might be available along with that bath?” She stripped off the soiled and crumpled gown as she spoke and held it out at arm’s length. “Take it and burn it.” Paula took the offending garment and folded it over her arm with a ‘tsk tsk’ and shake of her head. “It can be washed, ma’am, and any one of the maids would be glad to have it.” “I can’t imagine why they would.” Clad only in her chemise, Angel dragged the quilt from the bed, wrapped it around her, and retreated behind a painted screen while the footmen carried in a hipbath and bucket after bucket of steaming water. “Marvelous,” she moaned when she sank into the rose scented water. Her hair was the first priority and she submitted to the repeated washings with a blissful sigh, until Paula had the tresses squeaky clean. Content to soak, Juliette watched her open the large box one of the footmen had brought in. “Oh, how lovely,” she exclaimed when the maid began laying out several items of lace trimmed underclothing. “Those look to be my size, Paula. Do I detect my lord’s handiwork in this? Whoever the benefactor, I am most grateful.” Paula brought her a warm, soft towel to wrap around her and another to dry her hair. “You have your grandfather to thank, ma’am. I was told he ordered these and several gowns as soon as he knew you had returned from France.” “Grandpère. Oh, the dear man. I must go to him at once. Do help me dress, please, as quick as can be. He will be so anxious and Lord Strathmere surely is waiting to speak with us again. Where is St. Clair, do you know? Oh, and I am famished.” Angel chatted on without pause while she dressed, and the instant her hair was dry, brushed, and tied back with a ribbon that matched her morning dress of pale green muslin, she dashed out the door with a grateful smile and airy wave at her patient maid.
Angel and Paula had come to an understanding that suited them both during the long drive from Portsmouth. Angel was delighted Paula wanted a position with her. She liked the cheerful and competent young woman and knew St. Clair shared her opinion. It had been necessary to tell her of the Earl’s true identity, naturally, and give her a sketchy version of their reason for being in France under assumed names, but not, of course, that they were unmarried. That secret was best known to as few people as possible. Angel sped along the hallway to the staircase, and catching sight of Devlin crossing the entrance hall below, flew down the steps and tumbled into his arms with a glad cry. “Oh, it is so good to be here, n’est‐ce pas? Have you seen my grandfather yet? I must find him at once.” “But will he want to see such a hoyden?” St. Clair caught her and set her on her feet. “I don’t need to ask if you are rested, after such a greeting,” he said. “And clean as well. Why, I almost did not recognize you.” “Wretched man. I could say the same of you,” she retorted, wrinkling her nose at him. “Indeed, you are looking very handsome. Are you going out, perhaps?” She stepped back and surveyed him. He must have been able to obtain some of his own clothing for no ready‐made coat would fit so perfectly across those broad shoulders. His snowy cravat, tied in some fashionable knot, contrasted nicely against the deep blue superfine of his jacket. He looked altogether much too handsome. Angel felt her breath catch in her throat as a slow warmth curled through her breast. She sent him a sultry, teasing look and was gratified at the answering gleam of desire that kindled in his eyes. He captured her hands and shook his head. “Don’t think it, Angel. You may have forgotten we are in a public place but I have not. Sir William and my uncle would have my head for washing were they to see me taking advantage of you. No matter how willing you may be,” he added, grinning. “Come, your grandfather is waiting for you and we have unfinished business with Strathmere as well before I can go out, which I plan to do as soon as possible. I can see the sooner we are wed, my dear, the safer I will be from some shameless hussy buzzing around.” “Will you be, I wonder?” she retorted with a pert tilt of her nose. Quite pleased with themselves, they strolled into the library, but at the sight of her grandfather, Angel ran across the room into his outstretched arms. “Oh, it is so good to see you,” she cried, weeping and laughing at the same time. “I am so sorry, dearest Grandpère, to have caused you such worry. “No need for any of your fussing, Juliette,” Sir William scolded, his voice gruff with emotion. “A fine mess of trouble you managed to get into, though I cannot lay all the blame for your disappearance upon you this time.” He grasped her shoulders to hold her out at arms’ length. “You look none the worse for it, I am pleased to see.” Juliette smiled up at him and laid her slender fingers against his lined cheek. He did not look overly worn by what she knew must have been a very worrying time for him. His hair had been gray for years but the blue eyes, so like hers, were as bright and sharp as always. “You are much too forgiving, sir, and I thank you for it. I am very, very, sorry for distressing you so, but I must tell you I would not have missed this adventure for all the
world. It has been trés fantastique. You will not believe the half of it.” She turned and held out one hand to St. Clair. “Here is my rescuer, sir. I don’t care to think what might have happened to me if he had not come to my aid. You have met my grandfather, St. Clair?” She beamed at the two men she loved most in the world as they shook hands. “We were introduced earlier and I have made my apologies for carrying you off to France to fall into one misadventure after another. Your granddaughter has an aptitude for entering into the most unusual escapades, sir. Does she always collect up strays wherever she goes?” St. Clair asked with a sly glance at Juliette. She frowned in mock indignation and gave him a sharp poke in his arm. “I do not ‘collect strays’ as you say, my lord. I simply assist where there is need,” she protested, then joined in the laughter this spurious explanation evoked. St. Clair guided her to a chair and took a stance by the unlit fireplace, his expression sobering as he waited for the General and Lord Strathmere to resume their seats. “Juliette has been getting into such scrapes since she was a child. We have quite a collection of strays at Graystones, thanks to her,” Sir William replied. “Someday in the future I should like to hear about her other strays, for I can see by your expression this odd habit is nothing out of the ordinary,” St. Clair said with a quick smile, “but I’m afraid we have more important matters to discuss. I believe my uncle has brought you up to date with the situation as it stands. He has shown me the note you received, which Angel has not yet seen, by the way.” “Note? You have a note?” Her eyes widened in surprise. “May I see it?” He nodded and she took the paper from her grandfather and read the terse words. “Why this is infamous! How dare they?” Angel read the short message aloud in a voice quivering with ire. “Langford, your granddaughter has interfered in certain matters. Refrain from alerting the authorities and she will return to you unharmed. Her well‐being depends upon your cooperation.” “Oh, I wish I could remember what happened!” Angel rubbed her hand across her forehead. “I try and try but it only makes my head ache horribly,” she said with a weary sigh. “Then don’t try,” St. Clair told her. “It will come, and in the meantime we will work with what we know.” He turned to Sir William. “Have you any idea as to why Ange… Juliette,” he broke off, shrugging. “It will take me some time to become accustomed to this change of names.” He glanced at Juliette, amusement flickering in his eyes. “Though anyone less angelic I can’t imagine.” She smiled smugly at him and he grinned before turning back to the subject at hand. “As to what your granddaughter stumbled into that would cause her to be abducted, I would welcome any thoughts you might have. It seems such a severe response.” Sir William shook his head. “Strathmere and I have discussed it at length and other than the obvious; it is connected to the hostelry where they spent the night after the accident. Somehow she stumbled on some scheme that if known, was a threat to whoever abducted her.” He turned to look at Juliette, who was paying close attention to the conversation. “Will you go over it once more, my dear? Perhaps something will occur to one of us while we are listening.”
“I will, of course, but place no assurance on my memory. I have yet to remember even how I came to be in St. Clair’s coach.” She recounted the entire episode from the time they arrived at the inn until the following morning, when she last remembered stepping outside to get some air. She shrugged, throwing up her hands. “I can remember nothing else, I am afraid. Has anyone questioned the innkeeper? Did he say who those men were? He had to be very much involved.” “Inquiries were made as soon as I had the information from your grandfather, but too late, I’m sorry to say. The place was shut up tight and no one in the area would admit to knowing where the rascal had gone,” Strathmere told her. “I am sorry. I wish I could be of more help but it is not of such importance right now.” She shrugged, as if to dismiss it, and said sharply. “I am much more interested in la Compté. Has he been arrested?” St. Clair looked quickly at his uncle and Juliette frowned. “Why do you look so? Has he escaped?” She stared at him, her eyes narrowed in suspicion. “Of course he has not escaped. He is watched and has made no attempt to leave London. The thing of it is, we have no cause to arrest him,” St. Clair explained. “You have every cause to arrest him! He is a spy and a murderer. Do you doubt la Comtesse’s story? Non, I do not believe so. There is more to this, I think.” Juliette folded her arms across her chest, settled back in the large chair and looked at them one by one, her steady gaze settling on Strathmere. “Well, sir? Are you going to explain this extraordinary comment?” “I knew she would insist on hearing the whole of it, Strathmere. Not surprising since she has been a very large part of this adventure. Can’t be shutting her out now,” Sir William said. “Indeed you will not,” Juliette declared. “It is not so much a desire to keep you in the dark, Miss Deveneau, as it is the embarrassment, after all your efforts, and St. Clair’s, that we are unable to bring this affair to a satisfactory conclusion. The fact of the matter is we have no proof le Compté is passing information to France,” Strathmere said. “Even if we did, until there was an official declaration of war, one could say to do so was unethical but not illegal. There are any number of Englishmen who were recently in France who I have no doubt were entirely too open in their conversations,” he added tartly. “Nor do we have jurisdiction over events that took place in another country.” “But what of la Comtesse? She mentioned several instances when Napoleon’s agents had information that could only have come from an informer. I was too fatigued last night to tell you everything, but what if...?” She paused, dismayed to see him shake his head. “Hearsay, my dear. Not enough to even obtain a warrant, and if his relationship to la Comtesse were to become known, it would be said she had every reason to hurt him in any way possible.” “Well, I think it quite outrageous. She was most reluctant to inform on him, which says a great deal about her character, as I would not be so generous. It is really too bad of you, to let
her down, when she has risked so much.” Juliette felt her face grow hot. “Surely there is some way to stop this man.” “No need to fly up into the boughs,” St. Clair replied, seemingly unperturbed by this outburst. She glared at him, but let him continue without further interruption. “We can and will stop him. It is going to take some trickery to do it, however. We need to catch him with classified documents actually in his hands or rooms and the only way to do it is to bait a trap.” Juliette folded her hands together and tapped her fists against her lips while she thought about it. “The list will be the bait, I suppose,” she said eventually. “How do you propose to do this thing? Is there anything I can do to help?” “We have not yet worked it out, my dear, but don’t see any need to involve you. We will inform you both as soon as plans have been put into motion,” Sir William said. “In the meantime, you must call on your aunt this morning. She was quite alarmed when you did not arrive as expected and won’t rest until she sees for herself you are well. She wants you to come to her, Juliette, and it would perhaps be advisable, since you will want to outfit yourself in the latest mode, I’m sure. After all, this is a bachelor establishment.” “Pooh. There can be nothing amiss with my staying in a house with my grandfather.” She dismissed this suggestion with an airy wave of her hand. “I have no intention of going anywhere. I will see Aunt Esther, and as many dressmakers as she likes, but I will not be separated from St. Clair. It would perhaps not be wise in any case for me to be seen about Town just yet.” “It would give rise to just the kind of gossip we wish to avoid, sir, since we are giving out we are already married.” St. Clair added. “Which fiction I will turn into truth, if I may be excused to procure the special license.” He held out his hand to Juliette. “If you like, I will see you to your Aunt’s house on my way.” Juliette took his hand and let him help her to her feet, gratified he seemed just as unwilling to be separated as she was. “You will see me to some food, my lord,” she said with a laugh. “I am famished. Does no one eat in this household?” She sent Strathmere a saucy look and he smiled. “I see I have been very remiss in my duties as a host. I had no idea you had not eaten. Well, that is soon remedied.” He rose and walked over to ring the bell. “Oh, your nephew quite swept me off my feet this morning, without the least consideration as to my needs.” She slanted a mischievous look at the Earl. “But of a certainty, I should be used to it by now. You have no idea of the straits I have been put to these last days. Sleeping on the ground, riding carriage horses without proper saddles. It is really too bad of him.” “Why, you little shrew. It isn’t I who tumbles into one mishap after another.” He tugged her from the room, both of them gasping with laughter, and completely oblivious of the gentlemen’s comments behind them. . “They’ve gone mad, the both of them. They will deal very well together,” Strathmere said with a shake of his head and Sir William chuckled. “So they will, my friend, so they will. Now, we have some planning to do.”
Chapter Twenty‐One “Surely you have had enough. For someone your size, you certainly eat a great deal.” St. Clair tugged Juliette out of her chair just as she swallowed a last morsel of toast, plopped a hat on her head, and pushed her from the room before she could find her wits. “Why such haste? I cannot go out like this, Devlin. At least give me time to change my gown and tidy my hair.” She yanked against his tight grasp in an unsuccessful effort to free herself. “Your hair looks well enough,” he replied, wrapping a cloak around her and hurrying outside. He lifted her into the waiting carriage. “Besides, your Aunt Esther will have her dressmaker ready and waiting, if I know anything about it.” St. Clair settled beside her and touched a finger to her lips. “You could never look less than beautiful, so no fishing for compliments. I am due at the bishop’s house this morning, you goose. Have you forgotten we need a special license before our wedding tomorrow morning?” Juliette stared at him in amazement, blinked several times and took a deep breath. “Tomorrow? How could I forget such a thing when I was not even aware of it? Why, you wretch. Was I not to be consulted at all? And I was not fishing for compliments, nor do I eat too much. Coming from you, who has scarcely provided me enough to survive these past days, that is doing it much too brown, sir,” she threw at him, her eyes flashing. “You mean to provoke me, I see, and it is really too bad of you.” He stilled her protests with a kiss, very aware he was taking great advantage of her. She would miss the formal wedding every woman dreamed of, as well as the opportunity to meet other eligible men. Something he could never allow in any case. She was his. He framed her face with his hands. “I have treated you shamelessly, my love. If I had not coerced you into coming with me to France, you might have been reunited with your family long since, and been enjoying the social whirl you had planned. I should allow you a choice, I suppose,” he went on, trying to look at least somewhat sincere, “and give you an opportunity to meet other men. We could work out some story to protect your reputation, if you wish it.” He would try to be noble. He really would, though he had serious doubts about being able to step back and watch her dally with other men. Indeed, the very thought of it made his blood boil. She looked at him warily, then her eyes widened. “Go to balls, and parties, perhaps? Dance with all the young men on the prowl for a wife? Is that what you mean, my lord? It is very tempting, I must admit.” He scowled at her. “If you wish it,” he forced out, almost choking on the words. She made a little sound that sounded like a sob and he lifted her onto his lap. “Angel, Angel love. Don’t cry. I will try to abide by it, even if it kills me.” “You are being quite absurd, you know,” she told him in a quavering voice. “You will not be shed of me so easily, sir. You promised me marriage and so it will be, or I will sue you for breach of promise.” She buried her face against his coat and wrapped her arms around his neck “Why, you little devil. You are not crying at all.” He tipped her head up and looked at her laughing eyes and quivering mouth. “You are laughing at me.”
“Of course I am. How could I not when you are being so foolish? If not for you, I’d be dead, no doubt, or still wandering around the countryside, instead of being with the man I love. The man who loves me, I believe.” She tilted her head and smiled invitingly. He answered her with a kiss that could leave no doubt as to his feelings and she melted against him, reluctantly drawing back only when the carriage slowed. Juliette made a half‐hearted attempt to tidy her hair, frowning at his sudden grin. “It is beyond help, I suppose, and a natural state when with you.” She reached up and ruffled his hair, an impish gleam in her eyes. “A very good reason to get a special license, yes?” She turned aside as the door of the carriage opened and gave her hand to the waiting footman. “Good gracious, the house looks like Aunt Esther,” Juliette declared, looking around curiously as she took his arm. “So it does,” St. Clair agreed, eyeing the tall, imposing house of gray stone. It did have the same dignified appearance of its owner. He had been acquainted with Lady Middleton a number of years and her house reflected her manner perfectly. No fancy embellishments for Lady Middleton! A tall, grave‐faced butler stood waiting in the spacious entryway, looking every bit as stately as the house, St. Clair thought with amusement. “Welcome, my lady, my lord. Lady Middleton awaits you in the drawing room.” He took the Earl’s hat and gloves and Angel’s bonnet and cloak and laid them aside. They followed him up the wide staircase and into a somberly decorated room entirely in keeping with both the house and Aunt Esther. She was elegantly dressed in a morning gown of silvery gray and stood ramrod straight and unsmiling. Juliette darted a look at St. Clair, her eyes bright with amusement. “Just so,” he murmured, one corner of his mouth twitching in agreement as they approached the elderly woman, who held out her hand to him in regal welcome. “Lady Middleton,” he said gravely as he bowed over her hand. “Lynton. We have you to thank for Juliette’s safe return, I understand,” she said, pinning him with a steely look. “Although just why you carried her off to France is not perfectly clear. It will become so in the future, I trust.” Her gaze went to her niece and her expression softened. “My dear. You have had quite a time of it, though it seems to have done you no harm. I see you are in looks, but your dress will not do at all.” She unbent suddenly, folding Juliette in a warm embrace and kissing her cheek. “I can see my forethought in arranging for my dressmaker to come here today was well warranted. She will soon have you to rights, child, though not even she could have a proper gown ready by tomorrow morning, so don’t expect it. An evening ceremony will have to suffice and while I understand the necessity, I deplore this havey‐cavey business, and such was my reply to your grandfather’s letter.” Juliette glanced at St. Clair, obviously trying to keep a straight face. He was hard put to control his own laughter and was greatly relieved when Lady Middleton’s next comment released him.
“Off with you, Lynton. This is woman’s business. I’m sure you have things you should be doing. You can return for Juliette this afternoon at four and take tea with us.” St. Clair gave Juliette’s hand a squeeze and smiled at the two women, not trusting his voice. Lady Middleton never failed to make him feel he was still in short coats. A redoubtable woman, but he knew she had a warm heart under her gruff exterior. He made a hasty retreat, retrieved his hat and gloves from the butler and ran down the steps to the waiting carriage. “The Bishop’s next,” he called to Ned, ignoring the knowing smile on his coachman’s face. Lady Middleton’s reputation was well known. “And I am not throwing your mistress to the wolves, as you seem to think. She is perfectly capable of withstanding any attempt at browbeating.” He stepped into the carriage, muttering. “God knows she stands up to me readily enough.” ~* * *~ Juliette was having no difficulties with her great‐aunt at all. The moment St. Clair walked from the room, Aunt Esther rang for a servant to summon both refreshments and the dressmaker. Both were very welcome, since she was still hungry, after being dragged away from her breakfast, and no more than Aunt Esther did she want to appear dowdy in any respect. Certainly her wardrobe was outdated and inadequate. She did possess some fine shawls and fans, however, which she would need to have sent up from ‘The House’, along with a riding habit. Juliette greeted the laden tray and modiste with equal warmth and while she partook of tea and some excellent pastries, watched the dressmaker’s assistants display bolt after bolt of fabric of every description and colour. “Now then, my dear. Let us see what will suit you.” Aunt Esther inspected her with a critical eye and pursed her lips. “Not just in the usual style, with that hair and those eyes. You take after your mother and she was accounted quite remarkable, I can assure you. Strong colours, I think, and your married state will allow more variety than those insipid pastels the ton insists on for the debutantes. Bah, they all look alike, if you ask me, and why any mother wants her daughter to be one of a herd, I cannot tell you.” Quite naturally, no one in the room cared to take exception with this statement, and Mrs. Jennings and Aunt Esther began a long discussion excluding Juliette completely. Struggling to hide her amusement at this high‐handed behavior, she finished her tea and began to inspect the fabrics, trusting her aunt to choose well for her. She had her mind on just one special gown, for the wedding, and knew just what she wanted. A bolt of shimmering deep blue satin caught her eyes and she ran her fingers along the smooth cloth. Not exactly the colour of the dress the Earl had purchased for her in France, which she had been forced to leave behind, but close enough. The style could not be quite the same. St. Clair’s gift had been meant for an evening party and where he had thought she could wear it on their journey, she had not a notion. Nor had he, she imagined. “It is a gorgeous colour, isn’t it, my lady?” The younger of Mrs. Jennings’ assistants spoke in an undertone, a wary eye on her mistress. “Will you be wanting an evening gown? It would make up beautifully.”
Angel smiled at her, and glanced at her aunt, who appeared deep in conversation with the dressmaker. “Yes, I do want something suitable for the evening, but not a ball dress,” she replied, keeping her voice low. “Have you a pattern book I could look at, or better yet, a drawing pad? I know how I want it to look, but am not sure of using only the satin. Perhaps you can advise me.” The girl hurried away to get a book from the stack they had brought with them, and several sheets of wide paper. Absent‐mindedly, Juliette took them from her and resumed her seat. Swiftly, she paged through the book, coming almost to the end before something caught her eye. It was a simpler design than most, falling in graceful lines from the high, gathered waist. The bows on the skirt and puffed sleeves must go, and the neckline was a trifle low, but it was an elegant dress that with a few alterations would compliment her well. She sketched a picture, added the slightest of trains, and was gratified when her helper whispered her excited approval. “An overdress, do you think? I know just the thing.” In a moment, a length of gold silk so fine it was translucent tumbled into Juliette’s lap. She ran her hands over the material and sighed with pleasure. It truly was gorgeous and was just the thing to make her dress something quite out of the ordinary. It looked frightfully expensive but Grandpère would make no objection. Not for her trousseau. She looked up to see her aunt standing in front of her, a questioning look on her face. “What, may I ask is going on here?” Lady Middleton took up the sketch and gave it a thorough appraisal. She eyed the material and said with a sniff. “Looks mighty extravagant to me.” “I have no doubt of it, aunt,” Juliette returned, a smile tugging at her lips. “Ha. Well, my brother can well afford it, to be sure,” Lady Middleton declared. “Although I wouldn’t mind seeing his face when he gets the bill.” She looked again at the fabric Juliette had chosen and nodded her approval. “A good choice, girl. You have an eye for what suits you. Wouldn’t be any use of trying to talk you out of it and I’m not fool enough to try. Always did take the bit in your teeth once you had made up your mind and I don’t suppose you have changed a bit.” “Not a bit,” Juliette agreed with a demure smile. Aunt Esther gave a crack of laughter and flicked her cheek with one finger. “Exactly like your mother. Now, enough of this shilly‐shallying. We have decisions to make and the sooner started the better.” “Yes, Aunt,” Juliette rose, gave her aunt a warm hug, and in perfect accord they began the pleasant business of ordering clothes.
Chapter Twenty‐Two Light from the candelabras reflected on the rose damask wall hangings and draperies, giving a soft, dreamy glow to the room chosen for the wedding ceremony. Lady Middleton’s insistence on an evening wedding was worth the wait, St. Clair decided as he inspected the room. Baskets of colourful flowers scented the air with a subtle perfume and he sniffed appreciatively. Perhaps the pleasant surroundings would help to make up somewhat for not having a more formal affair with all the trimmings; something he still felt guilty about for all Angel’s protests that she did not mind in the least. No, Juliette, he must try to remember — although she would always be Angel to him in his heart. His angel, his dear friend. Gad, he needed her so. Her laughter, her joy de vie, her readiness to enter into his mad starts and more than a few of her own, it seemed. St. Clair walked to the sideboard where glasses and drinks waited for the bridal toasts and poured a small amount of whiskey into a glass. He would do everything in his power to make her happy, he vowed, raising his glass in a silent toast to her. He drank the fine spirit in one swallow, half tempted to shatter the empty glass in the cold fireplace. Which is hardly a good way to start the evening, you nodcock. Lady Middleton would not take kindly to him smashing one of her delicate crystal glasses, especially after generously providing the use of her home for the evening. The nonsensical idea lightened his mood, and he set the glass aside with a low chuckle. He turned to inspect his attire in the ornate, gilt framed mirror gracing one end of the room. The painstakingly tied cravat was still crisp and snowy white, a sharp contrast to the black jacket and embroidered waistcoat. He nodded in approval at his image, pleased to see that the ministrations of his long‐suffering valet would do the poor fellow proud for once, since it was seldom his master consented to be dressed to the nines. St. Clair patted his pocket once again, making sure the ring, chosen that very morning, was still secure. Although where it could have gone between here and his uncle’s home was beyond him. Grinning at the foolish notion, his second of the evening, he moved to greet Strathmere with great good humor. The older man smiled at him and placed a hand on his shoulder. “You have done well, my boy, and I can’t tell you how pleased I am to participate in this happy event. I think you will deal very well together. In fact, I doubt you could have found anyone better suited to you if you searched the world. Be happy, lad.” St. Clair reached out to grasp his uncle’s other hand and gave it a firm squeeze. He was deeply indebted to this upright and honourable man who had stood in the place of a father to him for many years. “Thank you, sir. We will do our best, I assure you. I know how lucky I am, and have every intention of keeping her content. I’m glad you are beforehand so I can express my appreciation for lending us your support in arranging all this. It is all very fine and will go a long way towards making it less ‘havey‐cavey’ as Lady Middleton would say.” “As she did say, I suppose,” Sir William said dryly, joining them. “Esther is not one to mince words. You mustn’t mind her, St. Clair. I never do.”
The Earl laughed, and shook his head, a sheepish smile on his face. “Then you are a braver man than I, General Langford. She fairly makes me shake in my boots.” “An effect Esther has on more than a few men, I assure you. She means no harm by it.” “I know it, sir, and we owe her a debt for all her efforts in making this evening special. Angel, uh, Juliette was very excited about her gown, though she would not give me the smallest detail. She is bent on surprising me, which is not always a comfortable object with her, I have learned.” The General chuckled. “Then you have already made a good start towards understanding my granddaughter, my boy.” St. Clair grinned, but he could barely keep his eyes from the door, though it was far too early for his bride to appear. He returned his attention to the conversation at hand, which since it concerned people unknown to him, was not of much interest and he welcomed the sound of new arrivals approaching. Expecting to see the minister, he was astounded when Carlisle entered the room, a woman at his side. Jasper here? St. Clair felt a rush of pleasure to know his childhood friend would be at his side for such a momentous occasion. He was sure he had his uncle to thank for this, and he looked at Strathmere, who wore such a look of expectation St. Clair swiveled around to see who Jasper’s companion was. Shocked beyond words, he could only hold out his arms and gather the diminutive, silver haired woman close. “Mama, I am so pleased. It was the one thing I regretted about this whole thing, you not being here to wish me happy. Strathmere told you, I suppose? Do you know the whole of it, then?” Teary‐eyed, Lady Lynton reached up to touch his cheek. “Of course he told me, silly boy. Even Strathmere would not dare keep this from me and ever face me again, I assure you. He has told me enough, though not all,” she paused to give her brother a reproachful look, “and you can be certain your adventure is safe with me.” She stepped back and gave an infectious gurgle of laughter. “Isn’t it fortunate your sister is away from Town visiting the Pates?” This sally drew laughter from all the men and the guests fell into a pleasant conversation, allowing St. Clair the opportunity to draw Carlisle aside. “What a hand you are, Jasp. How did you manage it? I thought you were going back out right away.” The Captain grinned at him, looking very smug. “I wouldn’t have missed it for all the world. Strathmere sent word as soon as you arrived here I was to stand by for a few days and get myself to London. I was doubly pleased at the opportunity to take Ken Wolfe with me when I return, if he is willing. A good man, I feel, and a welcome addition to my crew.” “He is willing enough, I believe, and I agree with your judgment. I have a feeling he would be a good man to have at your back.” He grimaced, half in jest, remembering how Wolfe had gotten the jump on him in France. “Not on your back,” Carlisle joked, grinning at this jab. St. Clair gave him a quelling look and Carlisle laughed, relinquishing him to Lady Lynton, who had come to stand beside them.
“I need to take him away, Jasper, to meet the minister. You can finish your visit later. Sir William has gone to escort Juliette.” Recalled to the moment, St. Clair followed his mother across the room to a small altar, his mind instantly going blank. It was time, and he welcomed the minister without the slightest idea of what he was saying. His mother looked at him in amusement, appearing to greatly relish her son’s attack of nerves. “Take heart, Devlin, it will soon be over.” “It can’t be too soon,” St. Clair said, coming out of his daze long enough to smile down at her. She beamed back at him and relinquished her place to Strathmere, who appeared to be equally entertained by the sight of his normally cool and collected nephew looking pole‐axed. St. Clair smiled sheepishly, muttered an apology for his inattention, and turned toward the door. She was a vision, his Angel, clad in an elegant blue satin gown that shimmered through a sheer gold overskirt as she moved. Looking as dazed as he felt, she walked the short distance and took his outstretched hand. He gazed down at her and knew he would carry this picture of her in his head forever, with her shining black hair curled around her face, her eyes luminous with love and a tremulous smile curling her lips. All his desire stood before him at last. His voice husky with emotion, hers firm and clear, they spoke their vows. Engrossed in each other neither was aware when the minister pronounced them man and wife. It took Carlisle’s laughing comment to break through their reverie. “Kiss the woman, you fool.” Startled into mobility, St. Clair did as instructed, while their small audience broke into laughter and then they were surrounded with well‐wishers. Even Aunt Esther bestowed a chaste kiss on St. Clair’s cheek. The butler brought in a cart laden with cold meats and pastries. Carlisle spoke a hilarious toast to the bride and groom, earning a lifetime of gratitude from the Earl for adding humor to this special evening. He was fiercely pleased, looking around the room, that circumstances had mandated this intimate, private joining of his life with Juliette’s. The additional asset of such a small gathering was the blessedly short length of it. St. Clair conversed like a sensible man, without a recollection later of one word, his mind on the hours ahead. Keeping a firm hold on his bride throughout, he made a mental reminder to send Aunt Esther something from Rendell’s in gratitude for lending her home to them for the night. While at times it seemed endless, everyone soon made their farewells, and the newly married pair, without a word between them, set aside their untouched goblets and leaning close together climbed the wide staircase to the room set aside for them. Alone, for no maid or valet was needed this night, they stood just inside the door, murmuring sweet endearments, exchanging increasing heated kisses, until St. Clair swept her up into his arms with a growl. “Enough, my love. You are too well clothed to please me.” “Truly, Devlin?” she breathed against his neck.
“Truly.” He sat her on the wide bed and shrugged off his jacket before sitting beside her to remove his shoes. Angel slipped her hands under his waistcoat, pushing aside the rich material to spread her fingers across his chest. “Perhaps you are too well clothed as well,” she drawled, a spark of mischief in her eyes. “Perhaps I am, but fortunately it is much easier for me to shed my clothes than you. Turn around, love, so I can get at those buttons.” Ignoring her sigh of protest, he unfastened the row of tiny pearl buttons as quickly as his shaking hands would allow. Another time, he would linger at the task, but not tonight, when he was almost feverish with longing. Finished at last, he drew her against him and kissed the sensitive spot just under her ear. “All done,” he murmured and tipped her head to nuzzle at her throat. “Devlin.” His name was a sigh, no more, and she lay acquiescent for a long moment, then turned to wrap her arms around his neck. St. Clair let out a choked laugh, caught her hands and folded them into one of his before laying her back onto the bed. “Enough, woman. Would you see me unmanned like a callow youth?” His free hand gently squeezed one breast, then the other, and she shivered with pleasure. “Do you really wish to hurry, love? Would you not like to have me touch you like this?” He could actually feel her skin heat as he moved up her body, his fingers stroking her neck before skimming across her flushed cheek to spread her shining tresses to lay in stark contrast against the white pillows. St. Clair eased her gown from her shoulders to expose the lace‐trimmed chemise and corset that barely covered the creamy skin of her breasts. Gad, she was lovely, all wide eyes and luscious red lips half open in unspoken invitation and he covered her mouth with his, drawing in her sweetness with long, lingering kisses. “I do like it, Devlin, so much,” she said when he lifted his head. “I would like to touch you as well.” He smiled at her and shook his head. “Not a chance, sweetheart. Not yet.” He slid his hand across her shoulder to engulf one sensitive breast and she drew in a sharp breath. “We have a long way to go, my love.” He paused to suck at one engorged peak, his tongue rasping against the fine material, and she stirred, restless under his touch. It was incredibly arousing, her sweet response, and he lay still for a moment with his head on her breast, before he caught her wandering hands and held them above her head. Her eyes were brilliant with love and desire and he smiled, a slow, sensual smile that brought a trembling response. He stroked the rosy lips swollen with his kisses. “I want tonight to be good for you. Let me love you, dear heart. There will be many nights when you can explore my body however you wish.” She studied his face, and seeming to see or sense the effort he was making to govern his desire, to give her pleasure on her wedding night, murmured, “If you wish, Devlin,” and lay pliant as he pushed aside her chemise and unlaced her corset to free her breasts and he sucked at one then the other until she was trembling and her heart raced under his mouth. “Ah, love, I thought you would like that.” Suddenly impatient, freed her hands and raised her from the bed to remove her clothing, his own swiftly following.
“Much, much better.” His eyes roamed the length of her and she coloured delightfully under his burning gaze. Her hands fluttered up to touch him, and then subsided at his little growl of warning. “That’s my good girl.” He captured her mouth in a long kiss that left her breathless. His hands stroked her smooth skin, skimming her belly with feathery touches and she drew in a sharp breath when his hand slid between her legs. “Devlin!” She raised her hips to push against him. He felt the growing moisture as he stroked her. “No tricks, Angel,” he demanded, his voice thick with passion. With a low groan, he slid a finger into her. Now, he had to have her now, and he positioned himself to enter her, meeting the slight resistance with a sharp thrust that brought a shocked cry to her lips. Murmuring his regret, he waited, rigid with barely leashed desire, for her to adjust to the feel of him; until suddenly she relaxed and reached up to caress his face. “It is well, mon cher. Love me, Devlin, this very moment.” She wrapped her legs around him as she spoke and kissed him fiercely. Now they would do this together.
Chapter Twenty‐Three There was a robin’s nest in the tree. Juliette could just see the top of the mama bird’s head through the large window. They had never bothered to pull the drapes closed last night, she remembered with a smug smile, snuggling against her new husband. They had been otherwise quite occupied. Wonderfully so. She suppressed a giggle, not wanting to wake Devlin. He lay on his side, one hand resting on her breast and one leg across hers, pinning her to the bed. Not that she had any desire to escape, for it had been most pleasing, this lovemaking. Sleepily, she looked around the room, smiling again at their clothing, tossed every which way around the large bed. She really must tidy up before any of the maids came in. Her gaze went again to the bird now sitting on the edge of the nest, a worm dangling from its beak. It must be a very large tree, since she knew this bedroom was on the third floor. It would present quite a challenge, climbing down such a tree. She would need to be sure no trees grew near the windows of their house when they had children. They would not be allowed to so endanger themselves. She knew full well how appealing a tree could be, having climbed so many. It was a wonder she was still in one piece, remembering how she often climbed out her window onto the old apple tree when she was a child. Why, she would not dare it now if her life depended upon it. “But it did. It did depend on it,” she breathed, memories flooding through her mind. She had climbed a tree very recently. That was how she had escaped her abductors and ended up in Devlin’s coach. Oh, she remembered it all now. She slipped from Devlin’s grasp and sat up, her heart pounding painfully. Juliette climbed from the bed, wrapped a robe around her and hurried to the window, frowning so fiercely at the startled robin it flew off with a loud squawk. Surely the tree she had climbed was not so large, she thought with a shudder, scarcely able to believe how she had escaped. Hands clutched tightly together, Juliette stood unseeing as the whole, incredulous episode flooded through her head. “What is it, love? You look scared half to death.” St. Clair said softly in her ear. She started, then relaxed against him with a sigh as he slipped his arms around her. “Hold me, Devlin. I know what happened the day I was taken from the inn.” Shaking with remembered fear, she turned to bury her face against his chest. “When I think how close I was, what might have happened….” She choked on the words, hugging him hard and he held her close for a long moment. “Was it so very bad?” With a growl, he picked her up and carried her back to bed, stripped off her robe in one swift movement and settled them both beneath the blankets before he pulled her back into his embrace. “You are safe now, love, and by God you will stay so, if I need to chain you to my side. Never again will you go off alone and if you think to pull any such stunts with me, I will paddle your backside.” He gave one buttock a squeeze as he spoke. “Really, Devlin? Almost you tempt me. Perhaps I should try it.”
“Perhaps you should not,” he promptly returned, and grinned. Smiling back, she lay down and rested her head on his broad shoulder. “It was him, Entremont, which seems almost unbelievable. That he should be there, at that inn and I there only by the wildest mischance! There was another man with him, someone named Radell. A gentleman, or so I suppose he was once,” she said with destain. Her lips tightened in anger. “I walked out to the stables to see if Peter had returned. I should not have left the inn without Molly, so this was much my fault,” she admitted, “but it was so smelly and close in the taproom and I had no notion at all there was anyone about.” “They were there already?” “Yes, Radell and la Compté. They were in the harness room, talking quite loudly. I was curious and I went closer to try to see their faces. Le Compté was telling Radell to do something and Radell was not very pleased about it.” She propped herself on one elbow and gave him a worried look. “Devlin, they knew about the gold. How could they know this?” Grim‐faced, he shook his head. “I don’t know. Something stolen or leaked from the War Office, I imagine. It’s one of the things Strathmere has been trying to uncover. We can discuss it with him later. Go on.” “It took a few minutes for me to realize I was listening to some very dangerous information and I should leave. I was backing away when a man grabbed me from behind and threw me into the room.” She felt him stiffen and Juliette ran her hand across his chest with a soothing motion. “I was more shocked than anything, but I did get in a good kick,” she said in a satisfied voice. “I hope he had a horrid bruise.” “Did you now. I’m glad to hear it.” St. Clair caught her hand in his and brushed her fingers with his lips. “I am not in the least surprised.” Sighing, she lay back down and stared up at the canopy overhead. “There was no use in it. He was much too strong. At least it gave that man, Radell, and him, a shock when I tumbled through the door. Neither was any too pleased to see me, either. I think they weren’t sure quite what to do, how much I had heard but once le Compté found out who I was he made up his mind.” Angel sat up, clutching the sheet tightly. “The innkeeper told them my name, for I did not think it something they needed to know.” She turned to face him and felt her face heat with anger. “A coward, that one. He could have helped me, for it was clear he wanted no part in it, but he was too afraid of Entremont. They all feared le Compté. Which,” she added grudgingly, “is not surprising, for he is a very bad man. “I did try to slip away while they were arguing about me, but Radell caught hold of me. He or le Compté hit me then and I knew nothing until a man came and gave me something to drink. I could hear voices around me but I must have gone right back to sleep because I was not aware of anything else until much later.” Another sigh and her voice dropped to little more than a whisper. “It was like this, Devlin.” Slowly, faltering at times, Juliette related the whole to him. There was a long silence when she had finished. “They must be stopped, Devlin,” she said finally. “These are very bad men. Le Compté has much to answer for and his friend is no
better.” She attempted to sit up. “We must go at once to tell your uncle what I have remembered. He will know what to do.” “Strathmere will know just as well an hour from now.” St. Clair kept a firm grip on his squirming wife, not yet recovered from listening to her close brush with death. Climbing down an unfamiliar tree in the dark to run through a forest he knew held more perils than the gully that had sent her tumbling; men not even fit to touch a hair on her head, daring to assault her. Blessed heaven, it was a miracle she had found her way to his coach and it had been he that found her. He smothered her protests with his mouth, his tongue seeking her sweetness. “Open for me, sweetheart.” Trembling, she obeyed. His hands roamed everywhere on her body, not gently this time, driving her higher and higher, until she cried out in sudden release. God, she was hot and slick, and he could not wait. He slid into her, his weight braced on his hands, and looked down at her flushed face and kiss‐swollen lips. She clutched his shoulders, trying to draw him deeper. “Look at me, Angel. I want to see you, watch you.” His voice was harsh with need, his face taut with desire. “Say it. Say my name.” She clung to him, her eyes locked with his, her breath ragged. “Devlin, Devlin, please. Now, I need….” The last vestige of control snapped when her legs wrapped around him. Shuddering, his release almost upon him, he began to move faster, harder, bringing her with him to the peak. “Yes!” His triumphant cry rang out with a satisfaction so engulfing he wondered how he had ever lived a life without this mingling of body and mind beyond anything possibly imagined. Murmuring endearments against his ear, Juliette drew his sweat‐slicked body onto hers. “I am too heavy for you,” he protested, making a half‐hearted attempt to pull away. Her grip on him tightened and she guided his head to her breast. “No, I like it. I like to feel you on me. I love you, Devlin, so much.” Entwined, they lay together until sleep claimed them and the morning was well advanced before Juliette stirred and reached over to shake him awake. “We really must get up. What would Aunt Esther think, should she return to find us still abed? Besides, we need to see your uncle.” St. Clair opened his eyes to see his wife leaning over him, her hair a tangled mass around her face, a charming pout on her lips and he smiled sleepily. “She would think you well loved, my sweet, on your wedding night. Which I believe you are,” he said. He reached for her. “She will think no such thing, my lord, being a very proper lady.” Embarrassed, Juliette climbed from the bed and snatched up her robe. “Not so proper as all that,” he said with a laugh, tickled by her sudden modesty, so unexpected after their passionate night. He stretched and rolled out of bed, wishing they could spend the day in it. Duty called, however, and he could see his bride was not inclined to put off seeing Strathmere any longer. By Gad, he would be glad when they had finished their
part in this affair. He would take her away and they would not emerge from their bed for a week — or more.
Chapter Twenty‐Four “I want to go to that inn,” Juliette declared in a firm voice and lifted her chin to let her companions know she was not going to be persuaded otherwise. “Why? Strathmere has already told us there is nothing to be found there. It is a waste of time.” St. Clair sounded more puzzled than annoyed at her insistence. Juliette shrugged and waved her hands in a dismissing gesture that spoke of her own bewilderment. She couldn’t shake off the feeling this was something she had to do, but didn’t think either of the men would give much credence to ‘feeling.’ She would need to use other means to convince them. She smiled sweetly at her husband. “I don’t believe it a waste of time, Devlin, but if you are too busy, I’m sure my grandfather will take me.” He looked questioningly at her, his eyes narrowed with suspicion. “I don’t know what you hope to accomplish, although I’ve no doubt you’ve some scheme in mind, but I can see you are not going to give up on this wild goose chase. I hope you don’t expect to encounter Robert Entremont there as I’m sure he is staying well away from the area.” “I don’t expect it and I do not have any scheme, as you say. I just want to see for myself where I was accosted.” She frowned at him. “Why are you so against it?” “I simply feel it’s time spent more wisely elsewhere, but I can see you are not going to be deterred. You will not go with Sir William or anyone else, however. I’ve no intention of allowing you out of my sight. You are too inclined get into trouble for my peace of mind.” “What could possibly happen on a pleasant drive into the countryside?” Juliette replied with an airy wave of her hands. “Thank you. I would much prefer to go with you.” She smiled demurely at him and then turned to Lord Strathmere. “Now you have heard about my encounter with Entremont and his men, when will you be able to arrest him? I am sure I would recognize all of them.” Strathmere was silent for a few minutes, after a brief glance at St. Clair and Juliette’s eyes narrowed in suspicion. “Just what…?” He held up a hand to interrupt her. “I wish I could tell you otherwise, but we still have no real proof. It is your word against theirs, and your reputation would be shattered if the whole story came out. It’s doubtful you would be believed, my dear.” She bristled, but knew it was the way of the world. It was most unfair. “What then is to be done?” she asked, conveying her disapproval with an eloquent shrug. “We will need to bait our trap and your appearance here might well be the very impetus needed,” Strathmere replied, picking his words with obvious care. “It may be something we can turn to our advantage. I have some ideas in mind but need to give this more thought.” He smiled affectionately at Juliette. “You are a most courageous young woman, my dear, and I expect to draw upon your resources again when we decide how best to go about entrapping Entremont. Today, however, go and enjoy your outing.” St. Clair rose and held out his hand to her. “I think we are being dismissed, love, and if you really insist on driving out to that place, we’d best be on our way.” He looked at his uncle
and grinned. “If we are longer than expected, we will impose on your people at Strathmere House to put us up for the night.” Lord Strathmere stood and nodded his agreement. “It might be wise to plan on it anyway, St. Clair. It wouldn’t be a bad idea to keep from Town for a day or so. I’d prefer to keep Entremont guessing, and he is certainly keeping an eye on this house for any sign of you.” Juliette chuckled, tucked her arm around St. Clair’s, and gave him a saucy look. “Another adventure, n’est‐ce pas? Perhaps we can stop to see Mrs. May as well. I would like to thank her for her kindness to me. “Heaven save me from any more of your adventures,” St. Clair retorted with mock sternness. His comment made her grin with delight as he took her arm in a firm grip and guided her from the room. ~* * *~ “Why, it is even more derelict than I remember.” Juliette eyed the ramshackle building with distaste as they drove into the dusty courtyard. “It does look as if it might tumble down any second,” St. Clair agreed. He handed the reins over to Ned and helped Juliette from the carriage. “It also looks quite deserted. I don’t believe your innkeeper has returned.” “He is not my innkeeper, and frankly, I don’t mind if I never see him again.” She waited impatiently while St. Clair tried the door and peered in the window. “You will not be able to see anything through the glass. It is positively filthy.” “I noticed.” St. Clair frowned as he looked around. “I can hardly believe your coachman allowed you to stay here.” “We had little choice. It was raining and we couldn’t spend the night in the coach. Besides, it didn’t look so horrible in the dark. But I suspect John Coachman slept on the floor outside my room, although I doubt he would admit it,” Juliette said with a mischievous smile. “John was even more horrified by this place than you are.” She took his arm and steered him toward the stable. “Do you see how much better the stable appears? It was one of the reasons we believed the innkeeper was into something unsavory. Why else would he keep this building in such good condition and have the inn falling to bits?” St. Clair opened the stable door and propped it back with a chunk of wood that lay just inside. Nervous now with all the memories of how frightened she had been, Juliette paused on the threshold. “You don’t have to go in,” St. Clair said. He wrapped his arm around her shoulders and she leaned against him, taking comfort from his steady support. “Yes, I do. I want to.” She slipped from his side and walked slowly along the aisle between the stalls. “I could hear their voices even from the doorway.” She glanced back at him. “It was so unexpected, you see, because we did not think anyone else was staying here, and I was curious.” She looked back at him over her shoulder and wrinkled her nose. “The inn was so stuffy and hot, you understand,” she apologized with a gurgle of laughter. “I really had to do something!” ~* * *~
Bah. This is of all things a dead bore. Juliette set aside the book she had been trying to read the past hour and walked over to stare out the window. The small panes with their old wavy glass provided a very limited view of the yard, which was of little interest anyway, she had long ago decided. “Bah,” she muttered aloud, but softly, not wishing to disturb Molly, who dozed by the fire. Surely she would go mad if she had to stay in this stuffy, smelly room another minute. What harm would there be in her slipping out to the stable to see if Peter had returned from fetching the luggage from the disabled coach? She had not seen a single person aside from the brief appearance of the innkeeper with what passed for breakfast in this place. Juliette shook out her sadly rumpled skirts, tossed her cloak around her shoulders, and after one quick glance at her sleeping maid, tiptoed out the door. It was a fine day, she realized, pausing in the doorway to watch thin, white clouds stream across the milky blue sky. All traces of the drizzle that had made their trek the previous evening so unpleasant were gone. She walked forward a few paces and turned to inspect the building where they had spent the night. It was no less disreputable in the daylight, with its peeling paint and crooked shutters. No wonder her coachman had been so dismayed at their being forced to put up here for the night. It was easy to imagine it a positive den of iniquity! Smiling a little at the direction of her thoughts, she walked toward the stables. Really, she was being much too fanciful. Grandpère would have given her that quizzical smile of his and quickly brought her back to earth. Oh, she did wish he were here. They had seldom been apart since the day she and Marie had arrived at ‘the House’ so many years ago. Now here she was, her first venture alone, and already in the suds. There was no sign of the cart and Juliette bit back a sigh. Peter must still be about his errand. But she would just take a look at the horses while she was here. They would be pleased to see a familiar face. Her hand was on the door to Sulky’s stall when the murmur of voices caught her attention. Curious, she moved slowly along the passageway. There had been no sign of any other guests. Who then was here in the stables? Intrigued, she continued on, halting outside the slightly open door to the harness room. She could just see a row of dusty bridles hanging from some hooks, but not a glimpse of the occupants. She could hear clearly enough, however, and her breath caught in her throat. Hardly daring to breathe, she pressed close to the wall, careful not to touch the door. “You will return to the coast immediately, Radell, though not to the same locale, so you will be in no danger. You will try not to be seen in any case. Will you not?” The smooth, faintly accented voice sent a shiver along her spine. “I will not be seen,” Radell retorted, and Juliette started in surprise. She would not care to cross the owner of that silky voice. But the Frenchman remained silent and Radell continued in a more moderate tone. “I still think it a risk. It would be safer for Jed to go.” “There are many risks in life, Radell. This is most certainly a minor one, and I have other uses for Jed.” There was a faint rustling then, and Juliette wished she could see what they were doing. “You are to take this to the same contact. He will be waiting exactly two miles south of your recent encounter. It that clear?”
“Perfectly,” Radell answered, sounding as if the word choked him. There was a short silence and Juliette looked around anxiously for a place to hide. But no, they continued, the voices quieter now and she strained to hear. “And the gold? When do you plan to intercept the coach?” “That is in hand and needs no discussion.” “Some of it better be in my hand, and soon, Entremont. I’m the one who took all the risks in stealing the information from the War Office.” “The bailiffs at your door, Radell?” the Frenchman sneered. “Mon Dieu! You better find another solution to your problem then, for I will not jeopardize my plans and risk all because you cannot stay away from the tables!” Entremont. Juliette stifled a cry. She knew that name. But surely it could not be the same family. All had died in the fire with her father. A vision of the burning Chateau filled her mind, and she closed her eyes, willing the memories away. She could not think of that horrible night now. Indeed, she tried very hard to not think of it at all. Silently, she began to back away. She must not be found here. She had almost reached Sulky’s stall, having determined it to be a safe place to hide until Peter or John returned, when a burly arm closed hard around her. “Ya wouldn’t be planning to leave us now, missy, would ye?” Juliette let out a screech and struggled frantically in the man’s arms. “How dare you! Let me go at once,” she shouted, her heart racing with fear. She kicked hard against his leg, but although the blow produced a satisfying grunt of pain, she was no match for his superior strength. A hard shove propelled her through the door of the room and she slammed against the wall with a jolt that made her head ring. Shocked and trembling, Juliette straightened slowly and turned to face the men. The man who had pushed her stood off to the side, a leering grin on his bearded face, and she shuddered as her gaze passed over him. He would do her harm if he could, but the other two men were the real threat, she sensed, and she studied them as intently as they did her. The younger of the two was carelessly dressed in riding apparel, unshaven and with hair overlong. There was the look of a man driven to excess about him, and she knew he must be the disagreeable Radell. Him she also dismissed. It was the third man she most feared. His cold, black eyes assessed her dispassionately, his thin lips drawn tight. The black hair was touched with silver. He was not a young man, this one. There was much experience on that sharp‐featured face. “Where the devil did she come from?” Radell was the first to break the silence and Juliette flicked a glance at him, returning her attention at once to the Frenchman. “Ah, one of Cully’s guests, I suppose. A very inquisitive guest,” Entremont said in a low voice. “Get Cully in here, Jed,” he ordered, never removing his gaze from Juliette, and the bearded man walked away. “Guest.” Radell’s voice rose. “She may well be, but she has heard an earful from the looks of it. She could ruin everything.” Juliette took a step back, chilled at the look of menace in the man’s eyes.
“Quiet.” The Frenchman’s soft command was as effective as a shout. Perhaps more, for Radell paled and dropped his eyes. “Your name?” Juliette pressed her lips together and stared defiantly at her questioner. Why would he want to know who she was? What did they plan to do with her? “Come, you are being foolish,” Entremont said, a mocking smile on his lips. “The landlord knows your name and how you came to be here.” “Miss Deveneau,” Juliette answered slowly, desperately trying to think. She did not want Peter to walk into this mess unaware, risking the chance of injury, or worse, but his return seemed the only chance she might have. Perhaps she could stall for time. “And your direction, Miss Deveneau?” “You have no need of my direction, sir, or of any other information about me. This is outrageous and I wish to be released at once,” she said staunchly, raising her chin. Attack was at times the best defense, Grandpère said, though it seemed of little use now, seeing the innkeeper enter the room. The man looked as displeased at the situation as she felt, and for a moment she entertained the idea he might help her. A stupid notion, it proved. “Granddaughter to General Sir William Langford, she is on the way to London,” the landlord said sullenly. “Coach overturned and they ended up here. What’s going on with her? Soon as that coachman of hers gets back with a carriage they’ll be on their way. I’ll have no trouble here, my lord.” “You will have exactly what I wish, Cully, and count yourself fortunate.” Entremont’s contemptuous tone brought an angry flush to the landlord’s ruddy face. “Now get outside and watch for Miss Deveneau’s men. Have Jed bring in the horses and my rig and tell Jake I want him in here.” Entremont looked at the innkeeper coldly and Juliette was glad to see the man avert his eyes. It seemed not only she and Radell feared the Frenchman. She inched along the wall. If the men went on talking, she would make an attempt to escape. Where she could go was another matter, but she couldn’t be much worse off than she was now. She had to try. Trembling, she measured the distance to the door and glanced at the men. None seemed to be watching her and she braced herself. Another foot and she would make a run for it. Intent on her goal, it was a shock to hear a sharp “hold her” and feel a heavy hand on her shoulder. “Going somewhere, Miss Deveneau?” It was Radell who held her. She could smell the spirits on him and she twisted furiously from his grip. “Do not touch me.” She backed away from both men, her stomach churning. It was disgusting, the feel of his hand on her. Entremont’s icy gaze seemed to bore into her and it was an effort to meet those cold, black eyes. “You will not be harmed, if you do as you are told. Juliette, isn’t it, if I remember correctly?” She could not control her start of acknowledgement and he smiled, his satisfaction evident. “Ah, you are Deveneau’s daughter, as I thought.” “You know her?” Radell asked, looking puzzled.
“I knew her parents, long ago,” Entremont replied tersely. Juliette felt the blood drain from her face. Le Compté was alive? He had not died in the fire with her father? “You were killed, they said,” she whispered. “How could you be here?” He gave her a mocking smile. “A fine question, my dear, and one I feel no need to answer. You are trouble, Miss Deveneau, and I have no time for it. My regrets. Radell?” With a grin that chilled her heart, the younger man walked toward her, until her back was against the wall. Panting, she struck out at him, landing one good blow on his neck before he caught her arms in a grip that brought tears to her eyes. She had a moment to think of her grandfather as her captor spun her around, and a searing pain slashed through her head before darkness claimed her. ~* * *~ St. Clair caught her up in his arms with a growl. “You are lucky you weren’t killed, you little fool. That curiosity of yours will be the death of you one of these days. It’s a wonder your grandfather ever allowed you to leave home.” “If Grandpère hadn’t been laid up with the gout he would have been with me,” Juliette admitted with a laugh. “But then we would not have met and had such a wonderful adventure, n’est ce pas?” St. Clair tipped her chin up for his kiss. “No, I suppose not and naturally I can’t regret it, but just thinking about what may have happened to you chills my blood,” he said when he released her. “They could have done away with you and none the wiser. What would Entremont have done if he had not known who you were? For a man who it appears to have no compunction about ruthlessly discarding anyone or anything getting in his way, it’s surprising he did not make your disposal more permanent.” “Perhaps he thought I might be more useful to him alive,” Juliette answered with a shiver. Disturbed at the idea, she wrapped her arms around St. Clair’s neck and hugged him. “Thanks to your timely rescue, that is no longer possible.” “Nor like to be again, as I have no intention of allowing you out of my sight until this is all over,” St. Clair said, his voice so cold she shivered again. “It is well then I much prefer to be in your company,” Juliette said lightly in an effort to dispel the dark mood. She brushed her fingers across his mouth. “Come, we should be on our way if we wish to have time to see Mrs. May.” He caught her hand and pressed a kiss into her palm. “Yes, especially since we are expected at Strathmere House for dinner.” His mouth twitched with sudden amusement. “Given recent events Strathmere’s people will start worrying if we are behind times — being accustomed as they are to my prompt appearances.” Juliette blinked and began to laugh. “Why you wretch. As if I chose to be spirited away! It could easily have happened to you.” Her eyes narrowed in sudden speculation. “In fact, I may need to arrange something just …” “Not a chance, sweetheart,” he interrupted, lifting her into the carriage. “I don’t plan to let you out of my sight long enough to arrange anything without my knowledge.”
“Wretch,” she said again as he climbed in after her. She smiled slyly at him and was rewarded by the quickly veiled look of consternation in his eyes. “We shall see.”
Chapter Twenty‐Five Entremont crushed the newssheet in one fist, shaking with anger. Idiots. Ignorant, slow witted idiots. Could they do nothing? Days of fruitless searching for the Deveneau chit and she turns up here in London! With St. Clair. Fury propelled him across the room to fling open the door and roar for his horse to be brought around. Some of the things he had found so inexplicable about her complete disappearance became clear now. Somehow St. Clair had stumbled on her and it was she who accompanied him to France. It had puzzled him at the time, once he had read the notice announcing the end of Lynton’s betrothal to Amanda Maybury. He should have put the pieces together then, instead of assuming the woman to be some actress hired to play the part. Furious at his misinterpretation of the situation, and enraged by the inabilities of his men to ferret out even the slightest hint of the Earl’s traveling companion, Entremont snatched his gloves and hat from the waiting footman and mounted his horse in tight‐lipped silence. He rode through the streets of London as quickly as the heavy traffic would allow, his mind racing with the implications of this unlooked for union of Miss Deveneau and St. Clair. He could only suppose the girl’s grandfather had insisted on the marriage to save her reputation. It was of little importance. What mattered far more was the reason there had been no hue and cry to apprehend the men who had abducted her. There was not a breath of scandal, nor even so much as a mention of her. Why hadn’t she alerted the authorities she had been assaulted? Drawing his sweating horse to a halt in the crowded foreyard of a tavern on the outskirts of the city, he dismounted, threw the reins to a groom, and made his way through the taproom and up a narrow set of stairs to the rooms overhead. The Jerveys sat at the one table, playing a cutthroat version of piquet and making rapid inroads on a bottle of wine. Both men jumped up at his entrance, all but knocking over the table in their haste, and began babbling apologies for their current activities. “We didn’t think to see you, my lord. Did you tell us you’d be coming here today?” Jake gave his brother a jab. “We can have this cleared away in a trice.” He glared at Jed, who began to gather up the cards. “Get out. Find Radell and get him here. Then wait downstairs until I send for you. And send up something to eat,” the Compté ordered harshly. He grabbed the bottle and thrust it into Jake’s hand. “Have some decent wine sent up as well.” The men shot out the door, a relieved expression on both faces, and Entremont smiled sourly. Stupid the pair might be, but the brothers had a well‐developed sense of preservation. Still enraged, he paced the length and breadth of the small room, thinking about the possible implications of Miss Deveneau’s involvement. “Lady Lynton now,” he muttered derisively under his breath. Not bad for a little nobody, landing an earl, even if it was an English title. There was plenty of money there and connections to some of the best families in England, including Strathmere, who was no fool, and his fingerprints were all over this English attempt to fund Napoleon’s enemies. How much did he know?
The light knock on the door was a welcome interruption. Without a word, Entremont opened the door to allow a barmaid to place a tray with several bottles of French wine and some glasses on the table. A quick glance at his face and she shot out the door almost as fast as the Jerveys. Completely unaware the woman had any idea at all of reward for this service, and equally indifferent in any case, Entremont examined the bottle’s label and gave a grunt of satisfaction before pouring a generous measure into a glass. Calmer now, his wrath under control, he took a seat and propped his booted feet to rest on the table.He sipped at the wine, turning various schemes over in his mind. It was time to get out. There was too much interest in his activities of late. Radell was fast becoming a serious liability, as well. The Compté tapped his fingers against his glass. He would go, but not quite yet. There were a few things yet that required his attention. A cold smile appeared on his face. He would not go empty handed, indeed he would not. Nor would that fool, Radell. He would be left ‘holding the bag,’ as these English liked to say. He waited in the dingy room, sipping at the wine from time to time, until Radell appeared at last, looking less ravaged than usual, though there was no apparent improvement in his morose personality. Dismissing the improvement as unimportant, Entremont gave him precise instructions, ignoring the look of growing amazement on his listener’s face. “Are you mad? I can’t possibly get away with it! I don’t have entry into those offices and even if I did get in there somehow, they aren’t likely to leave something so important lying around.” “You will need to find a way.” Entremont pinned him with a cold look. “I must have that information.” “And if I don’t?” Radell challenged, for once meeting his tormenter’s icy stare head on. Entremont masked his surprise at this unexpected bravado and smiled, though there was no humor in it. “I think you will not be pleased at the consequences, my friend. Not only will you miss a very lucrative reward, you risk exposure, which I assure you I will not hesitate to do.” “I think not,” Radell declared defiantly. “Not unless you want your part in this known as well.” “My part?” the Frenchman returned with sneer. “There is nothing to link us together, Radell. Who would believe the wild accusations of a known drunkard? A trusted friend of Prinny’s involved in such a plot? Not a very credible story.” “Perhaps not. But it doesn’t take much to sully a man’s reputation, now does it? You would not get off unscathed, Entremont.” The Compté glared at him with such animosity that Radell paled visibly and took a step back. “Very wise, my friend,” Entremont said in a smooth voice full of menace. “You will think of a way, I feel sure. Let me know at once when you have it in your hands. Come. We will drink to your success.” The Frenchman poured wine for them both and handed Radell a glass with a mocking smile. “After this I will no longer have need of your services, which will please you, I am certain.”
Radell stared at him for a moment, swallowed the wine in several quick gulps, and set the empty glass on the table. “It may take some time, Entremont, to pull this off. I will be in touch.” He walked toward the door, not even slowing at the low voiced words behind him. “Not too long, my young friend. Not too long.”
Chapter Twenty‐Six “You will tell Strathmere no.” St. Clair jerked his uncle’s letter from Juliette’s hand, crumpled it into a ball, and tossed it on a table. “I won’t have you put in jeopardy and this is a chancey scheme. I see no reason to involve you.” Juliette stared at him as if he had grown another head and his mouth tightened. She was going to be difficult about this and he silently railed at Strathmere for embroiling her at all. “I certainly will not tell him any such thing. You are being nonsensical, sir. It is an excellent plan and I will not be in the least danger.” She frowned, threw up her hands, and took a swift turn around the room before coming to a stop in front of him. “We will be in a house full of people! Even Entremont would not have the nerve to assault me there, or anyone, for that matter. Besides, you will be with me, along with my grandfather and Lord Strathmere.” St. Clair folded his arms across his chest and looked coldly at her. “The man is ruthless. You know that better than anyone. I doubt there is much he wouldn’t do if it is to his advantage, and he surely does not look favorably on you.” Juliette looked searchingly at him and her defiant expression softened. “I see you really are concerned, Devlin, but truly I think it unwarranted.” She reached up and cupped her hand around his cheek. “Entremont may well bear me a grudge. He is much too smart, however, to chose a crowded ball as a place of retaliation. I will be quite safe with you there to protect me.” She tugged at his hands until he opened his arms and gathered her close. She laid her head against his shoulder. “I want to do this, Devlin. I need to do this, to confront him.” Her soft voice held a determination as strong as any he’d ever heard and his mouth tightened. He understood her wanting to stand up to the person who had done her and her family such harm, but he did not like this. He sighed, tipped up her head, and kissed her gently. “Let me think about it, go over the plan and perhaps find a way to make things safer for you. I will not have you put at risk.” Just the thought of losing her, of having her injured or hurt in some way, made his blood run cold. She smiled at him, the look of understanding in her eyes somewhat easing the knot of fear in his chest. Perhaps the knowledge of his concern would keep her from being reckless. “All will be well, Devlin, but let us discuss it and make sure neither of us has any risk with this scheme. Basically it is a good idea, I believe, but there is always room for improvement in any endeavor, n’est ce pas?” “So you say,” he said in a skeptical voice that made her laugh. Juliette picked up the rumpled letter, smoothed it out, and settled on a sofa. She patted the cushion in invitation. “Come, sit with me and we will read it again.” St. Clair smiled wryly and allowed himself to be persuaded. He would make no agreement or commitment in discussing it, but it would go better with a glass of brandy in hand. They were still at Strathmere House and the Viscount kept a fine cellar. He may as well take advantage of it. “Will you take some sherry?” St. Clair asked. “Mmm,” Juliette replied in an absent‐minded fashion as she re‐read Strathmere’s letter.
“I will take that as a yes.” He filled a glass and stood watching his wife for a time. She was totally engrossed, a tiny frown wrinkling her forehead and the glossy hair he so loved to slide through his fingers curled loose from its pins. Why she even bothered to tame the delightful mass he couldn’t imagine. Some womanly thing, he supposed, and he had to admit he did prefer to have the full glory of it for his eyes only. Smiling at the thought, St. Clair carried the drinks across the room, set his aside, and taking Juliette’s hand in his, wrapped her fingers around the stem of her glass. “You must know the contents by heart, love,” he said. Startled, Juliette looked up at him in surprise. “Oh, thank you.” She smiled somewhat sheepishly. “It is terribly important,” she explained with an earnest expression, and he chuckled. “Well, I have only read it the once, so perhaps you can further enlighten me as to what nefarious plot our dear uncle has devised to trap le Compté. Juliette wrinkled her nose at him and grinned. “You know very well it is not nefarious at all. In fact, it is quite simple and entails no danger to anyone whatsoever. Except for Entremont, of course.” St. Clair looked at her with an expression of patent disbelief and Juliette straightened indignantly. “Well, it is, Devlin, now that man Radell has agreed to help. Having him come forward was a stroke of luck.” “If the man follows through with it and doesn’t back down,” St. Clair drawled. He took a sip of his brandy, stretched out his legs and waited for her to continue. “I think he will,” Juliette declared. “In return for helping us, Radell is to be given passage to America and he will also have the payment Entremont gives him for the list of Royalists to give him a new start.” She paused and looked gravely at him. “Strathmere feels Radell is desperate to get away from le Compté while he still can, which is wise of him as I doubt if Entremont has any intention of treating him fairly.” “If Radell had any brains at all he would have run for his life before now,” St. Clair said dryly. “Surely he must realize that as soon as le Compté has no use for him, his days are numbered.” Juliette bit her lip and sighed. “It is hard not to feel sorry for the man, but he has behaved very badly, selling his country’s secrets. Perhaps he will do better in America.” St. Clair seriously doubted it, if gambling was the man’s downfall, but kept his opinion to himself. “Explain to me again why this rendezvous is arranged to take place at Lady Hawksbury’s ball. I find it difficult to believe the Frenchman agreed to so public a place.” “It surprised me as well,” Juliette admitted, “but Radell felt it a safer place for him than some dark alley, and Entremont has no choice. Listen to what your uncle said about it.” ‘Entremont needs the names badly is my guess, since your timely interference and the foresight of la Comtesse lost him the gold he had counted on to finance his return to France. I doubt if Napoleon was pleased to have his soldiers return from Amiens empty‐handed. He will blame Entremont for this failure and providing Napoleon with a list of Royalist sympathizers would go a long way towards regaining favor.
Le Compté’s most recent activities indicate he plans to leave England immediately after the meeting with Radell, so this will be our only opportunity to obtain enough evidence to prove his complicitity. Loath as I am to involve you, Juliette, your participation is important. We want more than a simple exchange between the two men and he may reveal more if you confront him.’ “That is all very well. It still does not justify putting you where a man completely without scruples might do you harm.” St. Clair put up a hand to forestall the protest forming on her lips. “Just because the Prince has a difficult time believing a man he befriended would betray him, and wants a reason, is not enough!” “You think I do this to satisfy some whim of the Prince’s?” She rose slowly, put down her glass, and turned to face him. “Not so.” She pressed a hand to her breast. “It is for me.” The bleak expression in her eyes brought him to his feet and he reached toward her. “Angel,” he began, but even his use of this special name had no effect. She stepped back and shook her head. “We waited, hour after hour, all through the night, on the hillside where Papa left us, watching the Chateau burn and the smoke choking us with the stink of death. I knew it, knew it here,” she cried and struck her heart with her fist, “long before morning he would not return as he’d promised. Papa always kept his word, always.” She brushed away the unshed tears with an angry gesture, took a deep, shuddering breath, and lifted one hand in an unconscious plea. “Entremont was responsible for my father’s death, might have caused mine, if not for you. Let me do this, Devlin. Take whatever precautions you want, but please don’t deny me this chance to face him.” St. Clair took her outstretched hand and brought her gently into his arms. Resting his cheek on her head, he breathed in the scent of her; a heady combination of her flowery soap and woman that never failed to stir him. Every instinct he had demanded that he shield her from harm. She would not go against him if he refused. He knew it and the certainty of it was an unlooked for joy, but what might it do to her? Could she put it behind her, forget about it, unfinished as she felt it to be? He could not, were their positions reversed, and the realization was the deciding factor. He lifted his head and smiled grimly. Not to mention the possibility of getting his hands on the blackguard who had dared to touch his Angel. “You are very persuasive and while I still can’t like it, I won’t make any further objections.” He tipped up her head and gazed sternly at her. “You do understand and agree that if I hear or see anything to indicate you are at risk, it’s over right then?” “Yes. Thank you,” she answered in a voice barely audible and relaxed against him. St. Clair lightly, slowly, smoothed his thumb over her lips, until the sad look in her eyes was replaced with kindling desire, and then covered her mouth with his. She was soft and delightfully responsive, and he wanted her suddenly with a desperation fueled by his fears. He deepened the kiss, demanding more, until she quivered in trembling response. “Now, I need you now,” he said in a harsh voice when he raised his head to gaze down at her flushed face. He released her long enough to strip off his coat and stride over to lock the door. “Devlin?” Surprise and excitement mingled in her low‐voiced question and he smiled as he approached her. “Take off your clothes, Angel. I want to look at you, naked and ready for me.”
“Devlin?” Shock tinged her voice and she searched his face for a long moment before she began undoing the long row of buttons on her blouse. What she saw in his expression to reassure her he could not guess. He felt as if his face was set in stone, hard and implacable. He had to have her, willing, giving of whatever he demanded. He wanted to rip the clothes from her body, bury himself in her, hear her sweet cries of pleasure. The blouse was open, at last, slipping from her shoulders as she unfastened her skirt and let both garments drop to the floor. Clad now only in lace‐edged chemise and petticoats, he ran his gaze over her with a deliberation that stained her cheeks red. Unconsciously she licked her lips and a low growl escaped him. “All of it, Angel. Now.” The petticoats slid loose as she unlaced the chemise, and she hesitated so briefly he almost missed it before she grasped the bottom of the thin garment and pulled it up over her head. Gad, she was beautiful. Her small breasts stood out proudly, the nipples hardening under his gaze, and he stepped closer. “Take down your hair.” Her eyes never leaving his, she lifted her arms and began to pull out the pins, one by one, every movement meant to inflame him and his fierce grin pulled the skin on his face taut. It was this he most loved about her, her willingness to give of herself, to join with him. Defy him she might, argue every point and lead him a merry dance she would, but she would give him anything he asked of her. “Ah love, you are enchanting.” He gathered a handful of her hair and feathered it over her breasts and nipples until she trembled with desire and tried to press her body against his. “Not yet, love. I want you ready, wanting me until you can think of nothing else.” St. Clair drew her arms behind her back and held her hands in one of his. She curved so sweetly, her breast an irresistible invitation and he sucked hotly at first one then the other. “Please, please. Devlin.” She moaned his name over and over and he caught the throaty whisper with his mouth, his tongue teasing, thrusting, rasping against her lips. “Please what, Angel? You want more? This perhaps?” He laughed and ran his hand along her body to the cleft between her legs and fingered her sex. “You, I want you,” she panted, bucking under his touch and twisting to free her hands. With a satisfied rumble, he pulled her down on the floor with him and opened his breeches. “Ride me, Angel!” And with one swift movement he lifted her onto him and slid deeply into her slick opening. She smiled, sultry and seductive, as she settled on him. Hands hard on her hips, he lifted her slowly up and down the length of him, until she found her own rhythm and took control, pushing them to the heights and over. “Oh, my.” Juliette collapsed across his chest in a boneless sprawl. “That’s the only thing you have to say? Oh, my?” St. Clair murmured into her ear. “All I have breath for,” she replied lazily, settling snugly into the curve of his arm. She tucked her hand under his shirt and idly fingered his chest hair. “You have too much clothing on, sir. I on the other hand, have not a stitch, which seems rather unfair.”
St. Clair chuckled and rolled to one side with her firmly in his arms. “I like you this way. So….” he hesitated, “so accessible.” His voice was thick with amusement, and she laughed and tugged at his hair just hard enough to make him wince. “Wretched man. Next time you will be the accessible one.” He propped himself on one elbow and gazed down at her, his smile fading. “Was I too forceful, Angel? I would not have you hurt or angry.” She tapped her finger on his lips. “What nonsense. Why would I be angry to have my husband love me so very much? As I love him. I do have one complaint, however.” She lowered her eyes and looking downcast, turned her head to the side. “You do?” Taken aback, he looked at her in surprise. She peered slyly at him from under her eyelashes, which should have been warning enough, but he was still trying to imagine what possible complaint she could have when she said in a solemn voice. “Indeed, I do.” She wrapped her arms closely around him and whispered in his ear. “This is a very prickly carpet.” There was a minute or two of stunned silence. “Why you little devil.” He grinned, rolled her onto her back, and propping himself up on his arms covered her body with his. “Prickles, is it? I’ll give you prickles.” He bent his arms enough to let her feel his full weight for a few seconds. “Devlin!” she squealed, shaking with laughter. “You fiend. You at least have clothes on.” St. Clair pushed up into a sitting position and scooped her up onto his lap. “So I do and a great hindrance it is. The next time we can both be unclothed and share equally in the prickles.” “The next time will be in a comfortable bed!”
Chapter Twenty‐Seven Juliette took a turn around her bedroom simply to enjoy the satisfying swish of her elegant, shimmering gown: a deep gold, with a pale gold overskirt and a beaded bodice that emphasized the bosom swelling above the glittering beads. She looked very well, she decided, stopping to inspect her image in the long mirror. With her hair piled artfully on her head, and a few tendrils framing her face, she was every inch the sophisticated young matron. Of course, her hair would be tumbling from its pins after a few of the more rigorous dances, but she had the satisfaction of knowing she started the evening in looks. “If you would please sit down, my lady, I will put the flowers in your hair,” Paula requested for the second time, her hands full of orchids, and such a look of resignation on her face that Juliette burst out laughing and sat down at the dressing table. “I have been a trial to you, haven’t I? I am sorry, Paula. I’m nervous about tonight, meeting St. Clair’s friends, and knowing everyone will be watching me to see if I am a worthy match for him.” Not to mention the sick feeling in her stomach when she thought about coming face to face with le Compté. “You look beautiful, ma’am. There will not be a woman who could hold a candle to you,” Paula assured her. She placed the last blossom in Juliette’s hair and stepped back to admire her handiwork. “Everyone will be envious of the master’s good fortune, to be sure.” “They will indeed,” St. Clair agreed from where he stood by the door, a long velvet‐ covered box in his hands. “No, don’t get up,” he said when Juliette turned to greet him and began to rise. His brief glance at Paula sent her bustling off with a pleased look on her face and he walked over to stand behind his wife. “You look beautiful, love. You will be the belle of the ball and I’ll be hard pressed to keep you to myself. Will you save a few dances for me?” Her eyes grew wide. “You may have all the dances, sir. I would not choose another partner.” He smiled at her indignant look. “Dance all evening with your spouse? It is not at all comme il fait to do so, you know. You will set the gossips all in a twither.” “Bah,” she exclaimed with an impish grin. “That is a very silly rule and not one I wish to follow. Besides, I don’t care to dance with strange men,” she confided as she twisted around to look up at him. St. Clair shook his head, a skeptical expression on his face. “They won’t be strangers once you meet them,” he said and placed the box in her hand. “Your bride gift, Juliette.” Surprise and puzzlement on her face, Juliette slowly opened the lid. “Oh!” Diamonds and sapphires linked twists of gold in an elegant necklace that sparkled against the black velvet lining. “C’est magnifique. I have never seen anything half so fine.” She touched the matching earrings and bracelet with trembling fingers. “I will be afraid to wear it, I think.” She picked up the necklace and held it to her throat. “Will you fasten it, my lord?” His eyes never leaving her reflection, he closed the clasp. His hands were warm against her skin and her pulse fluttered under his caress as he smoothed the pendant to lie gleaming between her breasts.
“Devlin? I think it would not be wise for you to continue so, or we will never get to the ball,” she said in a husky voice. “No, I don’t suppose we would.” His fingers lingered and then he stepped back. Juliette rose, turned to wrap her arms around his neck, and pressed a soft kiss against his mouth. “Thank you, Devlin. I wish I had something special for you,” she said with a sigh and rested her head against his chest. He chuckled and tipped her chin up to look at her face. “You are all the special something I can handle.” He traced her lips with his tongue. “We should be going, if you are ready. The sooner this is over, the happier I will be.” “I as well,” Juliette agreed, wrinkling her nose in distaste. “We shall finish with these men tonight and all will be well. If Radell keeps his word, why, le Compté will be caught in the very act of receiving the information.” “I hope you are right,” he replied in a somber voice. All his misgivings about tonight’s plan swept over him. He knew from past experiences if anything could go wrong, it would. It should be straightforward, with ample protection for Juliette, but all his instincts said otherwise, and he had learned not to ignore these feelings. She reached up and smoothed the frown from his forehead. “There is no need for worry, sir. It is a good plan, and little chance of anything going amiss.” He smiled somberly at this confident statement, but declined to contradict her. Let her keep her confidence high. It would make things all the more believable. He picked up her shawl, a lovely silken thing that wouldn’t keep a butterfly warm and placed it around her shoulders. “Very nice, but it is well it is a warm night.” “Yes, it is, since I could hardly wear a coat with this gown,” she said with a laugh. “I, at least will not be sweltering in a jacket and waistcoat.” She took his arm and they had moved toward the door when someone knocked. “Entrée,” Juliette called. Adam bounced into the room, the wide smile on his face quickly replaced by a look of amazement at the sight of them in all their finery. “My, you look wonderful, Miss Angel. Just like a princess. And you too, sir,” he added without removing his gaze from Juliette. “I didn’t mean you look like a princess, sir.” He flashed a quick smile of apology to the Earl before rushing on. “Is that a real jewel? What kind is it? I know the diamonds, but not the blue stone. It matches your eyes. Is that why you chose it?” “Why, thank you, Adam. I do feel somewhat of a princess in this gown. But I did not pick out the necklace. St. Clair has just this evening given it to me. Perhaps he did choose the sapphire to match my eyes.” She looked up at her husband, eyes dancing with amusement. “Are my eyes like sapphires, Devlin?” “Baggage,” he replied with a laugh. He laid a hand on the lad’s shoulder and gave him an affectionate squeeze. “I did choose the sapphires for just that very reason, Adam. Though I think Miss Angel’s eyes are prettier, don’t you?” Adam studied her for a few seconds and grinned broadly. “Her eyes are much prettier, sir, ‘cause they have happy twinkles in them.”
“A very wise observation, my young friend.” “Flatterer.” Juliette reached out to give Adam a hug. “You are in high spirits this evening, Adam. Is anything special at hand?” “Ned and Miss Peters are taking me to Astley’s circus tomorrow,” he told her with obvious excitement. “There are trick riders and all kinds of animals to see. There might even be an elephant!” “It sounds marvelous. Perhaps I should come with you. Certainly it must be something quite out of the ordinary.” “You’ll like it, I know you will.” He turned to St. Clair. “You will come with us, too, won’t you, sir?” Adam’s huge smile would have melted a heart of stone. “It will be the greatest fun and you won’t want to miss it.” The Earl was no more immune than Juliette to the boy’s enthusiasm. He grinned and tousled Adam’s hair. “You are incorrigible, my lad. Very well, I will come, as long as you leave Hickory at home.” “Hooray!” Adam let out a shout that brought Miss Peters rushing in. “Is the lad pestering you, my lady?” She looked at Adam and shook her head. “You shouldn’t be bothering my lord and lady, Adam,” she chided him. “You’ll be after them for the sightseeing, I suppose,” she said with a resigned sigh. Adam beamed at her. “They don’t mind, truly they don’t, Miss Peters,” he declared without the slightest doubt in his voice. “Do you Miss Angel? Sir?” Smiling at this blithe statement, Juliette assured Paula they did not mind in the least. “Indeed, it will be vastly entertaining. Now, however, my young friend, it is time for us to go. ” She placed her hands on his shoulders. “You must decide what most you wish to do, Adam, and we will try to fit it all in before you go to your grandparents. We all leave for the country in a few days.” She leaned over and gave him a quick kiss on the cheek. “I will.” He looked beseechingly at St. Clair, who chuckled and moved his wife back to his side. “You are embarrassing the lad, my dear. Adam is too old for kisses.” “Bah, no male is ever too old for kisses,” she declared with a saucy smile. Adam’s returning grin stretched across his face, but he prudently stepped back all the same. “Thank you, sir, Miss Angel. I will see you tomorrow. I hope you have a grand time at the ball,” he added with a little bow. He scampered out at the same speed as he had entered and with an apologetic smile Paula followed after him. St. Clair looked down at his wife. He would much prefer it if they had nowhere to go but to bed. Her passionate nature was a continual delight and he was both enthralled and humbled by the love she offered so freely. The instant this plotting and planning came to an end he would whisk her away to his country home, safe from harm’s way at last, where they would be free to savor those pleasures as much as they pleased. “Devlin?” With an effort, he brought his mind around to the present. “Are you ready, my lady?” “Oui, monsieur.” She flashed him a mischievous grin. “L’ aventure grande continues, yes? “Oui, Madame, it does indeed.”
~* * *~ Just as St. Clair predicted, Juliette was surrounded soon after their arrival by a number of gentleman eager to request a dance. She kept to her word, however, and gave her dances to her husband, excepting only a few of Devlin’s close friends she met that evening and appeared to like very much. They certainly liked her and he watched with fond amusement as she glowed under the attention. “We are setting the tabbies all atwitter, my love,” St. Clair said with a wry smile as he led her onto the floor for their fourth dance of the evening. Juliette flashed him a quick smile, her eyes twinkling with amusement. “It is very good for them. How bored they would be otherwise.” The Earl examined her face for signs of strain but if her serene countenance was any indication of her feelings about the meeting ahead, she was not suffering from any onset of nerves. He, however, was finding it more difficult every passing minute to subdue his apprehension about confronting Entremont. Le Compté was here, as was Radell, though neither had come close, nor given any indication they had come here for anything other than to socialize. Radell had gone at once into the card room—and one could only hope he stayed sober and aware of the time. Entremont spent most of his time conversing with other French émigrés, sipping from a glass of champagne and seldom allowed his gaze to rest on Juliette. St. Clair couldn’t fault the Frenchman with drawing undue attention to them but he had a multitude of other sins to answer for. Still seething at the thought that the man had dared to lay hands on his wife, it was hard to appear unconcerned with anything more important than the next dance. “Devlin?” Juliette whispered as they walked off the floor to join his uncle and Juliette’s Aunt Esther. “You are looking very fierce, sir. Why the young man we just passed thinks you a most disagreeable husband. Did you not see the sympathetic look he gave me?” This comment made him laugh and he smiled down at her. “If he knew you as well as I do, the man would realize it is I who deserves the sympathy.” “What a bounder.” She tapped his arm with her fan. “I am a model wife.” He made no reply to this sally, but tightened his grip on her arm and nodded to the other members of their party as he led her toward the room set aside for supper. The appointed time had arrived at last. Juliette kept up a stream of light chatter, only subsiding when they reached the door of the ladies’ withdrawing room. “I will meet you in the supper room, my dear. Don’t take too long or all the lobster patties will be gone.” St. Clair raised his voice enough to reach the ears of any listener—and damn Radell to hell if he was not where he should be. Juliette widened her eyes in mock surprise. “Then you must hurry to save some for me, sir.” She laughed and turned as if to enter. There was no one else waiting to use the room, something they had counted on by setting the time just as most guests were going in to supper. ~* * *~ When the sound of St. Clair’s footsteps had faded, Juliette moved in the opposite direction and continued along the hall to a small anteroom adjoining the library. St. Clair
would walk back through the supper room and take up his position. Strathmere would follow when he could make an unobtrusive exit, while Sir William and Aunt Esther remained behind to deter any gossip that might arise from having them all disappear at once. Juliette stepped into the anteroom and went at once to open the door to the library the slightest of cracks, then crossed the room to stand by the cold fireplace. Her message to le Compté had specified a time not much before the meeting Radell had arranged with him. Would he come, his curiosity overcoming his fear of discovery? This was by far the worst part, waiting to see if the trap was truly well set; if Entremont would take the bait, if Radell would do his part as promised. So deep in her thoughts of the many variables, the sound of a door closing made her start in surprise. She turned. Entremont had come. They stared at each other for a long moment. Juliette had no need to feign an expression of defiant alarm—her knees were weak with fear—while Entremont, who had far more control, allowed only the smallest of movement of one eyebrow. “Miss Deveneau. Or shall I say Lady Lynton?” he said in the silky voice she so detested. “Your missive was rather a surprise. I fully expected a visit from the authorities after your return from France. I had no thought of being able to meet you again, though I am quite delighted, of course. Even though you have put me to a great deal of trouble. May I ask why I have been awarded this opportunity? An entrapment, perhaps?” “It is not that at all,” Juliette retorted, “although you have used me famously. Thanks to your assault, I lost my memory for many days and only recently remembered who was responsible. By then, it was too long a time. What could I prove, after all? Who would believe an accusation against someone in your position?” There was enough bitterness in her voice at this injustice to make her story believable, and she saw some of the suspicion fade from his eyes. “No, I had another reason to meet you,” she added in a quieter voice, although she was nearly shaking with rage at the thought of what this deceivingly handsome and well spoken man had done to his family—and hers. “You see, I have a message for you, and I wanted to see the man who was responsible for my father’s death.” There, the words were out, and she watched his face for any sign of remorse or guilt, but the look he gave her was cold and pitiless. “Your father was an interfering fool who caused his own death. If he had cared for you like the good parent you thought him, he would be alive today,” Entremont sneered. The shot went home, and Juliette flinched at the cruel words. “My father was a loyal man who did his duty,” she replied, her voice shaking with fury. “Something you wouldn’t understand.” “My loyalty is to myself,” he said with a harsh laugh. “Do you think anyone else gives a damn for me? Not my dear sister, full of tales she couldn’t wait to tell. It is just like the bitch to survive,” he spat out, and then made a chopping motion with his hand. “Enough of this. My time is limited. Give me this so‐called message and get out. You’ve been almost as much trouble to me as your father. You have the same talent for sticking your nose into matters that don’t concern you.”
“Someone has to stand up to people like you,” Juliette declared, raising her chin. “I am proud to be compared to my father.” “You are a stupid little girl and lucky I didn’t kill you when I had the chance. Instead I was lenient and have received only grief for it.” “You call being hit on the head and held prisoner lenient?” “You would have been released eventually.” He smiled coldly, his eyes scanning the room. Seemingly satisfied, he turned his sharp gaze on her. He was closer to her now, and she stepped back a little, careful to keep away from the door. “Eventually?” Juliette bristled with outrage at his obvious indifference to her imprisonment. “You are too kind, my lord,” she declared scathingly. His seeming amusement was infuriating. She wanted to slap the sneering look from his face. Her hands curled into tight fists and she willed herself to relax. “I am never kind.” The smooth voice was soft, but there was a tone in the words that left no doubt he meant what he said. He reached out and placed his cold fingers against the pulse beating wildly at her throat. “You are frightened, my dear, and perhaps you are the wiser of us. I must admit to having some idea you might prove useful to me.” She was afraid, afraid of the coming confrontation with the men in the anteroom, afraid Radell would not do his part—and where was the dratted man? Afraid, too, she had to admit, of this man whose soulless eyes seemed to drill into her. There was nothing he would not do to further his ambitions. She resisted every instinct urging her to flee and returned his look as calmly as she could manage, swallowing a sigh of relief when he lifted his hand from her neck. “Ah, you would be a challenge, I believe, but I have no time for dalliance, however appealing the game. So unfortunate.” His voice roughened. “Get out of here, Miss Deveneau. Go back to your worthless compatriots before I change my mind about your usefulness.” Shocked at the sudden dismissal, Juliette tried to speak and was silenced with a sharp “Go!” “What of my usefulness, Entremont? Is that at an end as well?” Radell closed the door behind him, the click of the latch loud in the sudden silence. “Is that why you agreed so readily to meet here instead of somewhere more private? So you could board the fine equipage waiting outside to take you to the coast, with no one the wiser? Leaving me to pay the piper, I suppose,” he finished scathingly. Surprise flashed briefly on le Compté’s face before his urbane mask was once again in place. He was not so infallible after all, Juliette realized with surprise, her eyes riveted on the men. “Not at all, my friend. I would have told you of my intentions tonight and urged you to leave the city as well.” Another shrug and lift of the eyebrows. Juliette wanted fiercely to punch the man. She looked at Radell, praying he would not believe this blatant falsehood, or let this distract him from his real purpose here. She should leave. Staying here was not part of the plan and St. Clair must be livid. But she felt rooted to the floor, desperate to see the thing through. “You really expect me to believe that?” the Englishman asked, scowling. “When Jed and Jake have conveniently disappeared? Convenient for you, that is.”
“The Jervey’s have gone abroad for their health,” Entremont replied with a mocking smile. “They were well rewarded for their part in this. Did you expect me to keep them forever?” Radell appeared to be somewhat mollified by this and Juliette caught her breath. He could not betray them now. “Were they? And what of my reward? Did you have something special in mind for me?” Radell flung the words across the room. “Naturallement, you will be well rewarded, my young friend.” Le Compté was all sincerity, and Juliette wondered if Radell had seen the same flicker of anticipation in the man’s eyes that she had glimpsed. She had no doubt the reward the Frenchman promised would not be beneficial to Radell. “If it is coin I will be well satisfied,” Radell said after a long pause. “Let’s get on with this. You brought the money?” Le Compté sent him a measured look, and then glanced at Juliette, reminding her she should not still be there. Indeed, she could almost feel her husband’s mental shouts to get out now, and she still had had no chance to pass on la Comtesse’s final words. Nonetheless, she edged toward the door. “Ah. Do stay, my lady,” Entremont drawled in a mocking voice. “You must find this most edifying. But it matters little now. All will be known by tomorrow.” He pinned her with a hard look. “Stay right where you are.” She nodded, knowing she should bolt from the room, but her troublesome curiosity overcame her good sense once again. Besides, it was only right that she be here, at the end. Entremont turned his attention back to Radell. “It so happens I have brought extra funds with me. Knowing the risk to you, I felt it more than worthwhile. Then too, we come to a parting of the ways and what could be more fitting then a generous farewell gift?” he asked, never taking his eyes from Radell, who appeared unaffected by the conciliatory words. “You do have the information I requested.” It was not a question. Radell took an envelope from his pocket and tapped it against one hand. “It is here, all the names, as you demanded.” He met Entremont’s eyes, frowning in question. “Tell me, Compté,” he said, placing a biting emphasis on the title, “do you feel any remorse at all knowing you will have signed a death warrant for so many of your countrymen and women, when you hand over this list?” Juliette’s breath hitched at this reminder of these consequences. Of course these people would be sentenced to die. Napoleon would see to it. For a minute, Entremont seemed startled at the question, and then answered derisively, his eyes burning with rage. “You are suffering an attack of conscience, Radell? Rather late for that, after having betrayed your country. Do you think of the lives that may have been lost because of the information you sold? Bah. You are no better than I. These Royalists work to destroy France. Napoleon has done more for her than that fat, foolish Bourbon who claims to be king, ever could.”
Radell visibly faltered under that withering stare, suddenly looking weary beyond belief as he passed the list to Le Compté. Entremont tore open the envelope, scanned the contents, and then nodded his acceptance. He removed a pouch from his pocket and tossed it to Radell. “The diamonds are the reward; the coin is as we agreed upon. A good price for treason, is it not?” The Englishman flinched and raised his head from his inspection of the contents. He seemed to draw himself up, straightening his shoulders though his face was now leached of colour. “Yes, it is a good price for treason. Gentlemen?” St. Clair and Lord Strathmere walked into the room and stood shoulder to shoulder before le Compté, who looked at them with growing awareness. He transferred his gaze to Juliette, who let every bit of the loathing she felt appear on her face. “I see. It was an entrapment after all. Very clever, my dear, I salute you. I thought you most convincing.” He bowed to her as if to send her his compliments. Automatically, they all turned towards her. It was all the time he needed. The small pistol hidden in his boot was in his hand in a split second and another instant took him to Juliette’s side, the weapon held steady against her neck. “It seems you will be of use to me after all,” he stated coolly, never removing his eyes from the men standing rock still in the middle of the room. St. Clair’s eyes turned almost white with suppressed fury, and Juliette was seized with the fear he would attempt to rescue her. Indeed, he stepped forward, but the gun in Entremont’s hand was jammed even harder against Juliette’s neck. Swearing, the Earl stopped in his tracks. “Very wise.” The Frenchman’s breath came faster now and Juliette could feel the rage in the tense body pressed against her. “I can put a bullet into her pretty neck much faster than you can get to me.” “Then you lose your hostage, Entremont,” St. Clair challenged, his voice very soft. “Ahh, you are quite right, St. Clair. But then I would have the satisfaction of revenge. Miss Deveneau has proved quite troublesome and you have been very interfering in my affairs, I believe. Perhaps I should ask for the return of some of that English coin you have been distributing so lavishly.” “Lady Lynton,” the Earl bit out. Juliette stiffened at the wild look in his eyes. Please, Devlin, she begged silently, willing him not to do anything to put himself in harm’s way. Not sure what she could do to help, and aware her every movement caused Entremont to tighten his grip, she tried to read some message in her husband’s face. “Lady Lynton, of course,” mocked le Compté. “I shall be sure to remember to address her so. Lady Lynton will be coming with me on a short journey, and if we are not followed, I will free her along the way. “No!” The shout rang out and Juliette saw Lord Strathmere grasp Devlin’s arm. St. Clair was quivering with fury and she thanked the gods for Strathmere’s restraint. “I would not advise it, if you wish the lady unharmed,” Entremont said, the silky voice harsh, and Juliette shivered.
He began edging toward the door, keeping her tightly in his grip. She attempted to resist, pulling against her captor until his threat to “shoot your husband” made her subside. “This pistol holds two bullets, my dear, and I am a very good shot.” “I am also accounted an excellent shot.” Radell’s words fell into the scene like bullets, and Entremont jerked, loosening his grip on Juliette a fraction. “Drop, Angel!” St. Clair shouted, lunging toward le Compté while she was still falling to the floor. Radell fired instantly, his bullet catching the Frenchman squarely in the chest. A look of vast surprise bloomed on his face as he crumbled to the floor. They watched the red stain grow across his coat and shirt in horrified amazement, too shocked to move. Then somehow, and not one of them could later explain it, le Compté found the strength to raise a shaking hand and fire at the man standing motionless a few feet away. A faint smile touched Philip Radell’s lips as he fell gracelessly to the floor, his pistol tumbling from his hand. The sound of the shots still echoed as Juliette was lifted to her feet and wrapped in St. Clair’s arms. They clung to each other, too shaken and frightened to speak. The sight of Strathmere, kneeling beside Radell, seemed to wake them from their daze, and together they went to le Compté and knelt beside the dying man. Blood bubbling on his lips, his eyes focused on Juliette, he made an effort to speak. She leaned closer to hear, heartened by Devlin’s warm grip on her shoulders. “Th…mess…message?” Juliette took a deep breath. She never imagined she would be giving the Frenchwoman’s message to a dying man. It was a sad ending to the dissolution and disgrace of this once proud family. “She said to tell you ‘that retribution is not without pain’.” “Ahh.” Recognition flickered briefly in the clouded eyes and the labored breath stilled. There was a long silence before St. Clair rose and drew Juliette up beside him. Together they went to stand by Strathmere, who was placing his coat over Philip Radell’s face with exaggerated care. The Viscount looked every one of his years, Juliette saw, rousing from the fog that seemed to envelope her mind. She exchanged an anxious look with her husband and in unspoken agreement guided the older man into the library. Juliette heard the door close behind them with a shudder of relief. She did not need to look at death any longer to have the horrible events of the past minutes forever imprinted in her mind. Juliette urged Strathmere to a sofa and sat beside him, while St. Clair went immediately to a sideboard and poured out brandy for all of them. She took the offered glass and sipped gratefully at the fiery liquor. St. Clair swallowed his with far less restraint, for which she could hardly fault him, and it appeared the spirit was having a positive effect on Strathmere, whose pale and shaken countenance was regaining some of its usual look of competence. Which judging from the commotion outside the door, would be needed very soon. St. Clair looked at the door, and then turned his gaze to her. “You should go,” Juliette told him softly, correctly reading the regret on his face. His duty lay elsewhere right now, with no time for their concerns and feelings, and she hoped her own expression conveyed her understanding.
“Yes.” The single word was imbued with a weary sorrow that further tore at her heart and it was an effort to keep her voice steady. “Go,” she said again, and he touched a single finger to her cheek before he left to inform his host, whose home they had so shamefully used, that there had been multiple deaths and the authorities must be called. “Radell said he was sorry,” Lord Strathmere said after a time. “Not for tonight, but for all the other. He was going to America tomorrow, to try for a new life. I think he might have done it.” Juliette summoned a faint smile. It was not a bad epitaph and more than many had.
Chapter Twenty‐Eight Lynton Hall, Six months later Juliette gathered the last of the Michaelmas daisies, and chilled by the November wind, hurried back to the house. She had neglected to pick up a shawl before she’d dashed out to the garden, and knew she would be taken to task if St. Clair saw her. Gracious, the man would wrap her up like a mummy if he had his way. Juliette took her flowers into the garden room and humming softly, began to arrange them in a pretty Oriental vase Lord Strathmere had given them as a wedding present. She felt sure it was very old and probably too valuable to use, but what was the point of owning lovely things if one couldn’t enjoy them? Besides, Strathmere was coming to visit and might appreciate having his gift displayed. The blooms were not at their best, she had to admit when she stepped back to judge her efforts, but still colorful enough to brighten up a room. It would do well enough. She filled the vase with water and called for a maid to take it into the morning room. She would really be in the suds if her husband saw her lifting a vase full of water! It was a wise precaution. The Earl stepped out of his study as she walked down the hallway. “Still fussing, Juliette? What you could possibly have left to do I can’t imagine.” He hooked her arm around his and halted. “Do you expect to need a weapon, love? I assure you Strathmere is not that difficult a guest.” He looked pointedly at the clippers still in her hand. “How silly you are,” Juliette declared with a laugh and placed the clippers on a nearby table. “You know very well I forgot they were in my hand. You are becoming a sad tease, sir. And I am not fussing!” She slanted her chin up in mock annoyance but a giggle escaped her and he grinned. “In that case, you have time to keep your poor lonely husband company for awhile.” St. Clair steered her into the library, and settling into a large leather chair, folded her onto his lap. “Poor lonely man indeed.” Juliette smiled skeptically and then snuggled comfortably into the curve of his arm. “How could you be lonely with all these servants about, Adam and the General popping in and out, and Strathmere coming to visit whenever he can?” She lifted her hand to draw his head down for a kiss. “Besides, you have me,” she said with a sly smile. “Indeed, I do have you,” he answered and there was a wealth of satisfaction in the quietly spoken words. They were content to stay just so for a time, savoring the moment. “Why do you think Strathmere wants to speak to us?” Juliette asked after a bit. “I had the impression from his letter he was concerned about something—that this was more than a normal visit.” “Perhaps. He did sound somewhat serious but there is no point in speculating when he is expected momentarily,” St. Clair said. Juliette wrinkled her nose at him. “You are always so pragmatic. Aren’t you the least bit curious?”
“No, not at all. You have enough curiosity for the both of us. Someone has to have some common sense around here.” Juliette sat up, bristling with indignation. “I do so have common sense.” “Do not,” he retorted. “Do so.” “Do not,” he threw back at her and started to tickle her until they were both laughing so hard they never heard the door open and their visitor enter the room. “Well, I see you two are as mad as ever,” Lord Strathmere said with an indulgent smile. “Oh, worse, no doubt,” St. Clair admitted with a somewhat sheepish smile. He grinned at Juliette as he stood and set her on her feet. “Not worse,” Juliette qualified. She crossed the room to greet Strathmere with a kiss and a merry smile. “But we do have fun.” “Good for you.” The Viscount held her at arm’s length and gazed thoughtfully at her. “Country life appears to agree with you, my dear. You are looking very well.” “I might say the same of you, uncle.” St. Clair grasped the older man’s outstretched hand in his for a warm handshake. “It’s good to see you, sir, although we did not expect the good fortune of having you with us so soon after your last visit.” Strathmere shook St. Clair’s hand warmly and smiled. “It is my pleasure to see you both at any time. True, I did not expect to do so this quickly, but I have news to share and something to discuss with you, which gave me an excellent excuse to get away from London.” “From the tone of your letter it is not happy news, sir,” Angel said, a guess confirmed by the grave expression that immediately supplanted the smile on Strathmere’s face. “Or anything you want to delay in the telling. Will you allow me to ring for tea before you begin? Surely you stand in need of refreshment after your long journey.” “That would be welcome,” Strathmere agreed. “I would also like to change and freshen up as well. Shall we meet back here in half an hour?” “Certainly.” St. Clair turned to Juliette, a question in his eyes. Juliette shrugged, lifted her hands in a half‐hearted, helpless gesture to indicate her equal puzzlement, and said, “I will change as well, if you will excuse me.” She hurried from the room, aware the two men followed closely behind her. It would take her far longer to dress than either of them and she was as eager as St. Clair to hear what Strathmere had to say. ~* * *~ Juliette poured tea for her two companions, stirred cream and sugar into her cup, and settled back more comfortably into her corner of the sofa. “The biscuits are very good, gentlemen, especially the lemon crème. Do have some.” She picked one up to nibble upon, although she was not in the least hungry. Speculation about Strathmere’s visit had dampened any urge to eat and she wished he would get on with it. As if reading her mind, Lord Strathmere set aside his cup and reached into his jacket pocket for a sheaf of paper. “You will be beyond curious and I apologize for keeping you in suspense. This is something I felt should be told in person.” He held up the papers in his hand. “I have recently received several letters from France that will be of interest to you both,” he explained, his grave expression giving Juliette some idea of what was to come.
“La Comtesse?” she asked softly. Strathmere nodded. “I am sorry to have to tell you she died several months ago, apparently not long after she met with you, Juliette. It has taken some time for this missive to reach me. Her servant, very faithful servant, I might add, took it upon himself to bring it to England personally, through some rather unorthodox channels, as you can imagine. He also brought a letter from the sisters who were caring for Madame; she was alert to the end and died at peace, according to the Abbess. “At least that much was given to her, poor lady,” Juliette whispered, her eyes filling with tears. “She had suffered enough, I think.” St. Clair moved closer to her and took her hand. “She is at peace now, love, and free of pain. We can be grateful for that.” He returned his gaze to his uncle. “But there is more to this unexpected visit, I believe.” “Yes, of course.” Juliette returned her attention to Strathmere, who most certainly would not have traveled all this way to tell them of the Frenchwoman’s death, however sorrowful it was to them all. Strathmere smiled faintly, looking quite unsurprised at this surmise. “There was also a letter from la Comtesse. She has made a request of our government, which we are inclined to honour in small repayment of her efforts for us. She specifically asked that you perform this task, if at all possible.” He paused, looking once around the room before clearing his throat; plainly he was uncomfortable with what he was about to tell them. St. Clair and Juliette looked at each other in puzzlement. It was certainly unusual to see Strathmere display any sign of nervousness. “And that is?” St. Clair prompted. “It may be easier if I read a portion of her letter to you. But first, let me say that you have a choice in this matter and there will be no fault to anyone should you decide against it. La Comtesse says much the same, as you will hear, and I have other possibilities in mind.” He glanced briefly at them and again cleared his throat before beginning to read. ‘Aside from the obvious, monsieur, which is to express my gratitude for your help in resolving this unpleasantness and to thank you for arranging for word of the outcome to reach me, I have yet another burden to lay down before I go. This may be something that our young friends will choose to undertake. Please make very clear to them that if circumstances do not allow for this, you have my complete trust in choosing someone equally competent. It is not easy to put yet another of my families’ disreputable exploits to paper. However, being the only one to know the truth, I feel compelled to make this last attempt to right a wrong. Some twelve years ago, my brother Robert seduced a young woman of good family. Claire was innocent of the ways of the world; naively, she imagined he would marry her as he promised, and when he laughed at what to him was a ludicrous idea, leaving her with a few coins and a shattered reputation, she came to me. I arranged for her to go to a convent until the child was born, a girl, Danielle Martine. I had planned to send them both somewhere far away, where Claire and her child could make a fresh start but it was not to be. Claire died within the week of childbed fever and the child was placed with a respectable family. Naturally I have supported her and until recently, received occasional reports of her well‐being. I am now informed that
Danielle’s foster father passed away several years ago. Her foster mother remarried within a year, an understandable circumstance which would ordinarily be of little importance. However, I regret to say this woman has also died, leaving Danielle and her younger half‐brother in the hands of the stepfather. This, my friend, is not an acceptable situation, as this man has taken these children to Portugal, where he claims to have business interests. I feel this to be an unwise enterprise, particularly at this time of unrest, nor am I certain this gentleman will cherish Danielle as his own. It is my wish that the child be found and her circumstances investigated to ensure her well‐ being. She is not penniless. There is a small inheritance; a portion from her uncle Georges and the little I have will go to her. I leave entirely to your judgment, Angel, should you decide to go, whether to tell Danielle the truth about her parentage. You must do as you see fit; your husband I trust to advise you wisely. Whatever is decided, I urge you to take action quickly. Knowing you will honour this request to the best of your abilities, which I feel are formidable, my friend! I will now be at peace. Many blessings to you, Angel, and Lord Lynton.’ Martine D’larque “There is a post script with information of the Swiss bank holding her brother’s funds, as well as a separate document naming me trustee and guardian if it becomes necessary,” Strathmere finished, smiling at what Juliette felt certain was an a expression of stunned disbelief on her face—and Devlin’s as well, she saw, glancing at him. She leaned forward and waved her hands in a helpless gesture. “My reaction exactly,” St. Clair said. “This definitely calls for something stronger than tea.” He rose, strolled over to the sideboard, and poured three glasses of wine from a decanter. Juliette sighed deeply. “I am for once completely at a loss for words,” she admitted as she took a glass from his hand. “You are never at a loss for words, my love,” St. Clair retorted with a chuckle. “I’m sure you will rally.” “Devlin, you wretch. You know exactly what I meant. I don’t know what to say, or think, about this, and I wager you don’t either! It is an incredible story, you must admit.” He smiled down at her and held up his glass in a half salute. “Of course it is. Quite amazing, and if it came from a less reliable source, I would think it unbelievable.” Strathmere, listening with avid interest to this exchange, sipped at his wine for a few minutes before commenting. “I questioned it myself. However, there is also a letter here from the convent’s Abbess. She verifies the child’s birth and has written out what information la Comtesse’s manservant Gaston was able to testify to personally. No, it is real enough.” Juliette looked at St. Clair and raised her hand to grasp his. “We cannot possibly refuse to honour la Comtesse’s last wish, as I am sure you will agree. That poor child! Of course we will go.” St. Clair gazed at her with a somewhat quizzical expression. “I suppose we must, or I will never hear the end of it.” He smiled. “L'aventure grande continue, yes?” Juliette smiled merrily at him and squeezed his fingers. “Oui, monsieur, it does indeed.”
If you liked The Angel and St. Clair, then you may enjoy A Deceitful Widow. A Deceitful Widow by Dianna Hussey http://pinkpetalbooks.com/A‐Deceitful‐Widow‐by‐Diana‐Hussey.html Chapter One London, May 1815 Dear Lord Waring, I have arranged for you to call on Mrs. McClain Tuesday next at two in the afternoon .The widow being of a reclusive nature, I sincerely advise that you make every attempt to accommodate my client. The direction to Rose Cottage is enclosed. Please let me know if there is any other way I may be of service to you. Respectfully, Albert Wardwell ~* * *~ Wiltshire, May 1815 Lord Waring planted one booted foot on a tree stump and studied the house below. It was time for his appointment, but since he had little expectation of finding any answers here, he was in no hurry to face yet another dead‐end in this wild quest to find his cousin’s widow. In fact, he was tempted to linger on the pleasant hillside, and Jenny had certainly earned the chance to nibble at the grass after the long ride from London. Waring ran a hand along the mare’s neck. Damp, but she would soon dry in the warm breeze and in another hour or so be snug in a stall with a bag of oats. If only he could be as easily satisfied. “But it would take the appearance of this probably nonexistent child to do that, and since I doubt this widow will be of any help to us, God knows when I can get back to my life,” Waring grumbled softly to Jenny, whose only response was a flick of her ears. “Not interested, eh? Can’t say I blame you.” He grinned at his nonsense and gathered up the reins. “Come, my sweet Jenny, enough snacking. It’s time to meet the elusive Widow McClain.” He swung into the saddle and rode down the hill.
The lavish display of flowers that filled the entire front yard, and the roses that climbed over the portico, worked well to soften the hard, solid lines of the stone cottage. Someone here was a skillful gardener, a suitable pastime for a widow of uncertain age, Waring decided as he approached the house. The arrival of a sandy haired, freckled‐faced boy brought him from his thoughts, and Waring dismounted and handed him Jenny’s reins. The lad looked at the mare with frank admiration, gave him a wide smile and a fervent promise to ‘take good care of her’, and led her away. Amused, Waring smiled as he opened the gate. Jenny did have that effect on a person. The mare was a very pretty horse. Waring walked along the path to the front door, knocked lightly and turned to watch the antics of the bees feasting on the fragrant blooms, but almost immediately, the door opened to reveal a stern‐faced woman of middle age. She stared at him as if he was an apparition and he wondered with some bemusement what there was about his appearance to garner her disapproval. “Good day. I believe that Mrs. McClain is expecting me. Lucas March, Lord Waring. We have an appointment this afternoon.” She took his proffered card without so much as a glance at it, stared intently at him a moment longer, then nodded as if she had made up her mind about something. A slight smile lightened her stony expression and she stepped back. “Well, come in, Lord Waring, so the door can be closed before we have a house full of bees. I am Martha Barnes. Mrs. McClain is in the parlour. It’s just along here.” She took his hat and gloves and set them along with his card on a small, ornately carved table that gleamed with the patina of age and polish. The entryway’s white painted walls were unadorned, with the exception of a portrait of a bewhiskered gentleman in uniform. Curious, Waring moved to examine it more closely, but the impatient click clack of the woman’s shoes as she crossed the hallway did not encourage lingering. Mrs. Barnes opened a door at the end of the hall and waited just inside until he stood close behind her. “Lord Waring, ma’am,” she said so loudly that he started. Perhaps the widow was hard of hearing? The thought had barely crossed his mind when the woman turned abruptly, gave him a baleful look he couldn’t interpret, and walked away without another word. Unusual behavior, indeed. Waring stood on the threshold and examined the room. Here the walls were also white, but unlike the stark entry, several colourful fans mounted on one wall enlivened the room. A small desk sat by the window; a settee, chair and the table between them made up the other furnishings. Nothing all that much out of the ordinary, other than being somewhat sparse, but pleasing nevertheless. All thought of the room and its contents disappeared at the silent approach of a slender, black clad woman, so astonishingly lovely that his breath hitched in his throat. She had to be one of the most beautiful women he had ever seen, and he’d known his share. Long lashes framed a pair of silvery‐grey eyes that studied him gravely. Her dark hair, drawn back into a knot at the base of her neck, was a sharp contrast to the creamy skin on that almost too‐ perfect face. Add to that a full, lush mouth and slim, straight nose and it was not surprising that he felt as if he had been planted a facer. Woman of uncertain age indeed! She couldn’t be
more than a few years above twenty. He stifled the very unexpected and ungentlemanly desire to see that hair tumbled around her breasts, her lips moist and rosy with his kiss, and stepped forward and bowed. “Mrs. McClain?” “Yes, I am Jessica McClain. Please come in, Lord Waring.” She offered the briefest of curtsies, her expression unreadable, but he swore there had been a flash of surprise in her eyes, very like Mrs. Barnes’ reaction. Now what was there about him to startle these women? “It is very kind of you to see me. Mr. Wardwell said that you seldom receive visitors. I hope my coming isn’t too inconvenient.” Waring smiled at her and wished suddenly that they were meeting under different circumstances. “Not at all.” She gestured toward the chair and took a place on the settee. “Please be seated and tell me in what way I might be of help to you.” If the cool, patient look on her face was any indication, the widow was supremely indifferent to his reason for approaching her. Waring took the offered seat and stared at the beautiful, expressionless face. Could she really be as cold as she appeared? It seemed almost unnatural, yet there was an air of fragility about her that was oddly appealing. “A family matter, Mrs. McClain.” Waring heard the chilly note in his voice and paused. Not wise. It would not do to offend the woman. Not, at least, until he had his answers, but he had seldom felt so entirely unwelcome. Her manner bordered on rudeness, and he suppressed the impulse to respond in kind and moderated his voice. “I am looking for a woman named Luisa Foster Sinclair. Your solicitor suggested that you may be able to provide me with some information about her.” “May I ask why you are interested in Luisa, Lord Waring?” For the first time she looked directly at him, a faint hint of interest in her eyes. He had not missed the familiar manner in which she spoke the missing woman’s name, and he tamped down a flare of excitement. “Very recently, my family learned that my cousin, Andrew Sinclair, was married to a Luisa Foster prior to his death in Spain. Andrew’s grandfather, the current Viscount Linden, who is also my great‐uncle, wants to meet Luisa, make sure that she is not in need.” He leaned forward in an effort to convey how important this was to them. “Lord Linden very much wants — needs — to hear something of Andrew.” She searched his face, her hands clenched in her lap, and he withstood the scrutiny with barely checked impatience as he waited for her to reply. “Then I am sorry to tell you that Luisa Sinclair died of the fever less than a year after Andrew’s death,” she said finally, the lightly accented voice husky with emotion. “She was my younger sister.” She looked away, and Waring rose and walked to the window. He wanted to take this stranger into his arms and comfort her, a surprising impulse given his irritation at her chill manner, not to mention a presumption that would likely earn him a well deserved set‐down. “I am sorry, Mrs. McClain. I feared as much,” he said into the uncomfortable silence. “It seemed the only explanation of why Andrew’s wife never tried to contact any of the family.” He turned to face her. “But one does always hope otherwise, of course. It will be a great
disappointment to my great‐uncle. Ever since we learned of Luisa’s existence he has looked forward to welcoming her into the family.” There was an instance of distaste in the cool grey eyes and he hesitated. Surely this sense of animosity was his imagination. It must be that unnatural stillness that had him on edge. The woman seemed barely to breathe, so little did she move. What would it take to disturb that studied calm? Clap his hands? Shout fire? Ignoring his absurd fancies, Waring resumed his seat and summoned a smile. “If you do not find it too painful a subject, will you tell me a little of Andrew and Luisa’s life together? It would please Lord Linden very much, I know.” Another intense and irritating scrutiny, but one with a more pleasant result, for she surprised him with a faint smile and a graceful wave of her hands. “I’m not sure how you learned of my sister, my lord. I wasn’t aware that Andrew’s family knew of their marriage.” “We did not, but recently a letter written by Luisa to Andrew came into our possession. Along with Luisa’s letter, there was a brief note from a Major Foster and we applied to the War Office for information. Then, thanks to the sleuthing abilities of my secretary, we located Mr. Wardwell.” Waring smiled and felt some of the tension ease from his shoulders. “You have a very loyal solicitor, Mrs. McClain.” “Mr. Wardwell has been a good friend for many years,” she said lightly. Was that relief in her voice? Waring murmured something unintelligible and cursed his overactive imagination, but then it seemed every bit of his good sense had vanished in the past half‐hour. He put on what he hoped was an encouraging expression, leaned back, and waited for her to continue. She glanced at her hands, folded loosely in her lap, then looked up at him, head tilted in question. “Do you know any of our family history?” Waring shook his head. She took a deep breath and continued. “My mother was Spanish. She and Father met at the Spanish Embassy in London and after they married, they lived here for a few years. When Father transferred to Europe, we went with him, and whenever it was not possible to follow Father, we stayed at Mother’s family home, the Hacienda del Sol. After she died, Father felt it wise for us to remain there, rather than follow him around Europe.” She paused and looked down at her tightly twisted fingers for a moment, her face unreadable. He swallowed his questions, too fascinated by the husky, seductive voice to risk interruption. The reward for his patience was a faint smile and a quick, intent glance before she continued. “Andrew and my father served together in Spain and when father was mortally wounded at Bussaco, Andrew promised to look after us.” She hesitated and looked at him, a question in her eyes. “You are aware, I suppose, that Andrew often served as an intelligence officer and a liaison to some of the guerilla groups.” Waring nodded. In truth, he was only vaguely aware of his cousin’s duties, but he had no wish to interrupt the widow, and seeming to take his agreement at face value, she continued.
“My cousin’s guerilla band was such a group and this was one reason why Andrew was able to visit us more often than one would expect.” A smile, so fleeting he thought perhaps he had imagined it, touched her lips. “It may seem somewhat unusual in the middle of a war for two people to fall in love, but the attraction between Luisa and Andrew was immediate. Even though Luisa was only seventeen, neither wanted to wait, and they married just a few months after they met. As it turned out, it was a wise decision, for they had barely more than a year together and much of that was apart.” She averted her face, but not quickly enough to hide the sheen of moisture in her eyes. “You must excuse me, sir, for even though it has been almost four years I cannot speak of this easily.” “Then do not,” Waring said. “It is I who beg forgiveness for intruding on your memories.” Disturbed by her obvious distress, he stood and walked over to examine the fans on the wall. “These are lovely and quite unique. Are they very old?” He had not the slightest interest in the fans, beautiful as they were, but anything to change the subject and defuse the emotionally charged atmosphere. “Yes, quite old and made especially for my grandmother. They were one of the few things I brought from Spain.” She hesitated, and he heard the rustle of her skirts as she rose and walked over to stand beside him. Waring glanced sideways at her. She was staring at one of the fans, a remote look on her face. The faintest scent of roses seemed to surround her and his pulse quickened. “Lord Waring,” she said softly. “Please tell your uncle that Andrew considered the time he and Luisa had together the happiest of his life. Perhaps that may bring some comfort to him.” She moved away before he could react. Waring turned to watch her cross the room and stand by the desk. Her face again wore that bland, patient look that made him feel she wished him to perdition. Perversely he ignored the unspoken thought and moved closer, quite aware that he disturbed her by his proximity. Never had he felt such an affinity for a woman and one who seemed to hold him in dislike at that. Her demeanor was unnerving and again he wondered what it would take to ruffle that cold façade. “Thank you. Knowing that Andrew was able to find some happiness with your sister will be of comfort to us all.” Deliberately he kept his gaze intent upon her face and was unsurprised to see her glance at him with quickly veiled hostility. Not surprised, but infinitely curious. The urge to probe further was irresistible. “It must have been very difficult for you, to lose both your father and sister. Did you then return to England?” Another sharp look before she stepped back with a wave of her hand and edged toward the door. “Not at once. Travel was difficult and several months passed before I was able to obtain adequate transportation. It isn’t a journey I’d care to repeat.” “No, I suppose not. Traveling under the best of conditions can be quite tedious,” Waring agreed, never taking his eyes from her face. He wanted to say something outrageous to shake that composure but settled for another probing question. He knew he was behaving badly, but dammit, why would she not volunteer any information? “You were not alone, I trust.” Her eyes widened in an exaggerated manner and he braced for yet another evasion, but this time he guessed incorrectly.
“Not at all. Mrs. Barnes accompanied me, and of course, my son.” The calm words hit him like a blow. She had a son. That explained the mention of a child in Luisa’s letter. Andrew did not leave a son. There was no wonderful outcome to this mess and now he faced telling his great‐uncle that there was no direct heir to the Viscountcy as they had so greatly hoped. “I see. That explains the reference to a child,” Waring said a little roughly, ridiculously disappointed since his expectations had not been high to start with. “We thought perhaps.…” She met his gaze squarely and shook her head. “No, Lord Waring. Jamie is mine.” Waring heard the note of finality in her voice and searched his mind for something else to say, anything to prolong his visit. “How old is your son, Mrs. McClain? I have two young nephews. They can be a handful.” The only response to his smile was a stiff, “He is four.” She made a decisive move to the door and Waring felt his mouth tighten. He swallowed his ire and made one more attempt. “The twins are almost five, and quite a challenge, as I’m sure my sister would agree. Amy never bargained on two of the little devils.” The widow’s icy countenance softened for a moment. “They must be a joy to her. Although I am not certain I could manage two of Jamie. One is quite enough, thank you.” A quick smile lit her face, and he felt the impact to his toes. Gad, she was stunning. Bemused, he followed her into the hall and paused at the door to pick up his hat and gloves. “Thank you for seeing me. I hope I haven’t overly disturbed you.” He gazed down at her, willing her to smile again, but the unreadable look was firmly in place once more. “Not at all. Please give my regards to your uncle.” She opened the door, stepped onto the small porch, and waited with barely concealed impatience for him to leave. Waring stared at that lovely face for a long moment while he drew on his gloves. “Good day, Mrs. McClain. Perhaps I will see you again.” He heard the sharp note in his voice, and for a second he thought there was a look of apology in her eyes. No, it must be his imagination, for the low voiced answer was no warmer than before. “Perhaps. Good‐day and a safe journey to you, sir.” Without a backward glance, she walked into the house and closed the door firmly behind her. Waring frowned, shook his head in disbelief, and stalked out to the gate, where Jenny stood snuffling at the youngster rubbing her neck. He summoned a smile and handed the boy a coin. “Thank you for looking after her.” “Thank you, mister. I walked her some. A nice ’un, she is.” The boy smiled shyly and scampered off. Waring gathered up the reins and swung into the saddle. “Well, it appears we aren’t wanted here any longer, Jenny girl. Never were wanted, I suspect,” Waring muttered as he rode away. He was no Adonis, but he considered his face and form well enough, and his manner pleasing. At least, most women seemed to like him. What had he done or said to make her take him in instant dislike? Was it the situation or something about him personally? Automatically turning the mare towards the village where he planned to put up for the night, Waring brooded over every word and gesture. What possible reason could there be for that
thinly veiled hostility he had sensed? Damn the woman. She had gotten under his skin and he feared it an itch not easily scratched.
About the Author Constance Hussey is a transplanted ‘Jersey girl’ currently residing in North Carolina who has been an avid reader of romantic historical fiction for many years. The cast of characters rambling around in her head, clamoring for their own stories, started her on the author’s path. Constance enjoys gardening, cooking, and relaxing on the back porch. Diana Fasoldt resides in Southern New Jersey, a ‘Jersey’ girl who stayed put. She has had the good fortune to travel extensively and England is one of her favorite destinations. Charmed and beguiled by the English countryside and history, she was inspired to create her own characters, plots and scenes. When at leisure, Diana enjoys working on her antique doll collection, tending her garden and curling up in a quiet corner with a good romance. Check out their work at http://www.dianahussey.com
PPB
Pink Petal Books, an imprint of Jupiter Gardens Press, would like to invite you to explore the entire Jupiter Gardens, LLC family. Don’t forget to sign up for our reader’s loop where we have monthly giveaways, chats, and more! Information can be found on the Pink Petal Books’ website. Jupiter Gardens, LLC – http://www.jupitergardens.com/ Pink Petal Books – http://www.pinkpetalbooks.com/ Jupiter Gardens Press – http://www.jupitergardenspress.com/ Thank you for buying and reading our books! Our authors appreciate your patronage.